■■ # LIBRARY OF CONGRESS,? # | [SMUHSOITIAN DEPOSIT.] f J «aay. /BS 2.387 «. UNITED STATES OF AJV^RICA. | / u , u NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE NEW TESTAMENT. THE RELATION BETWEEN JUDAISM AND CHRISTIANITY, ILLUSTRATED IN NOTES PASSAGES IN THE NEW TESTAMENT CONTAINING QUOTATIONS FROM, OR REFERENCES TO, THE OLD, By JOHN GORHAM PALFREY, D.D., LL.D. k* ih Non enim me cuiquam mancipavi ; nullius nomen fero ; multum magnorum viromm judicio credo, aliquid et meo vindico; nam illi quoque non inventa, sed queerenda, nobis reliquerunt; et invenissent forsitan necessarta, nisi et superfiua qusesissent. Seneca, Epist. xlv. BOSTON: CROSBY, NICHOLS, AND COMPANY, 111 Washington Street. 185 4. Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1854, by John Gokham Palfrey, T_ ,i n f in the Clerk's Office of the District Court of the District of Massachusetts. CAMBRIDGE! METCALP AND COMPANY, PRINTERS TO THE UNIVERSITY. TO THE FRIEND, TO WHOM HE IS INDEBTED FOR THE PUBLICATION OF THE LAST TWO VOLUMES OF HIS LECTURES ON THE OLD TESTAMENT, THE AUTHOR RESPECTFULLY AND AFFECTIONATELY INSCRIBES THIS WORK. PREFACE The following pages make a sequel to my " Lec- tures on the Jewish Scriptures and Antiquities," a large portion of their contents being a requisite com- plement to the leading argument of that work. Independently of the inherent interest which be- longs to the Jewish Scriptures, demanding diligent care for their correct exposition, I have chiefly aimed, in the series of comments now brought to a close, to make a contribution to the Evidences of Christianity. From the earliest to the latest times, from the con- temporaries of the Apostles to Voltaire and Thomas Paine, the Old Testament has been used as an arsenal for assaults upon Christianity. The Jews, who were addressed by our Lord and his first ministers, said that he did not correspond to the idea which their Prophets, venerated by them as unerring guides, had presented of the Messiah. The Pagan writers, as Celsus, Porphyry, and the Emperor Julian, adopted the same reasoning; and it has been repeated in modern times by Anthony Collins, and other able men. Physical science, as it has advanced, has sup- Vlll PKEFACE. plied indisputable contradictions to the account of the Creation, and other related statements, in the Book of Genesis, — statements for whose correctness the advo- cates of Christianity had acknowledged that religion to be responsible. The writings of Jews later than the time of Moses, especially the historical books, are represented to contain accounts of persons and trans- actions, now contradictory and essentially incredible, now unworthy of God to approve or direct ; and such as are sufficient to refute the claims of Christianity, if they are to be taken as part and parcel of it. There is no doubt of the exceedingly offensive spirit and language in which these objections have been urged ; but it has never seemed to me, since I began to think upon the subject, that they have been effectually answered. I do not think that Jerome made a satisfactory reply to Porphyry, or Bishop Chandler to Collins, or Bishop Watson to Voltaire and Paine. I was a boy in college when our coun- tryman, Mr. George B. English, published his book, entitled, " The Grounds of Christianity examined by comparing the New Testament with the Old." In the strictures which it drew out, Mr. English was abundantly convicted of plagiarism; but I did not think then that his argument was disposed of, nor do I think so now. Other parts of the Evidences of Christianity may overpower any adverse inference from this class of considerations. But, allow the Jews and Pagans of the first Christian centuries, — allow the moderns, Bolingbroke, Collins, Morgan, and Voltaire, PREFACE. IX — their premises, and I find myself compelled to own, that, as to this topic, they have the best of the dis- pute. I deny their premises. If the expositions of the Old Testament, which I have set forth in this series of volumes, are correct, those opponents of Chris- tianity have no ground to stand upon. First, by a detailed examination of the Old Tes- tament books in my " Lectures on the Jewish Scrip- tures and Antiquities " ; and now, by an examination of passages in the New Testament which quote from, or refer to, the Old, with a view to show that the New Testament never puts upon the Old a sense different from what I had ascribed to it, — I have aimed to establish the following propositions, viz. : — 1. That the Pentateuch (with the exception of some later interpolations) was written by Moses, the di- vinely authorized revealer of the Jewish religion. 2. That the history, in the last four books of the Pentateuch, of the ministry of Moses, and of his pro- mulgation of the Jewish Law and miraculous ad- ministration of the Jewish people, contains nothing incredible, or dishonorable to God ; but that its con- tents are eminently of the opposite character. 3. That, as author of the Book of Genesis, Moses nowhere lays claim to the character of an inspired historian ; that his object, in its composition, was to confirm the revelations and provisions of his Law, to which it is a preface ; that its last thirty-nine chap- ters contain family traditions, sometimes more, some- X PKEFACE. times less credible, — sometimes incredible, by reason of contradictions, and otherwise ; and that the earlier portion, evidently proceeding originally from diverse sources, and embracing irreconcilable statements, was collected and preserved by Moses, not because of its having any warrant of historical truth, but mainly because of its being evidence of a state of opinion, in times anterior to his own, accordant with doctrines and practices inculcated by his religion. 4. That the revelation of Judaism, and all miracu- lous administration of the Jewish nation, terminated with the age of Moses. 5. That the historical books after the time of Moses have no other authority than that of works of other historical writers of a rude age ; that their authors do not lay claim to supernatural inspiration, nor is that claim asserted for them by any authorized wit- ness ; that they are to be taken, like other such com- positions, as containing a basis and outline of truth, but with a large mixture of unfounded, self-contra- dictory, and incredible narrations ; and that, espe- cially, Christianity neither makes itself, nor is in any way rightfully made, responsible for the accuracy of their contents. 6. That neither the Old Testament, nor the New, teaches, that, from the time of Moses to the time of Jesus, there was any man supernaturally informed of any future event whatever ; that the word prophet, in the Biblical use, did not denote a predicter of future events ; that the office of a prophet was not PREFACE. XI that of a foreteller ; that the anticipations expressed by the prophets often differed from events as they subsequently occurred ; that their conception of the coming Messiah was to a great extent incorrect, and, as far as it was correct, was founded on a declaration of Moses, connected with earlier revelations to the patriarchs ; and that there is no evidence of any ful- filment of an anticipation of theirs, of a nature to show the anticipation to have been supernaturally suggested to their minds. 7. That the miscellaneous writings of the later Jews, including devotional and ethical compositions (like the Books of Psalms and Proverbs), while they are such as to bear testimony to the improving culture exerted through the Law, are not the productions of men miraculously endowed and commissioned ; that, interesting and profitable as any of them may be, they are destitute of any peculiar authority ; and that, in the composition of some, as the books of Jonah and Judith, nothing more was contemplated than a fic- titious narrative, with or without a moral. These, I repeat, are conclusions which I have un- dertaken to maintain, not upon any grounds of ab- stract reasoning, but upon an examination, in detail, of the Old Testament itself, and of those texts of the New Testament which bear upon the Old. Few, perhaps, will take up my books prepared to agree with me. But it may not be too much to ask of can- did persons who dissent, that they will consider what are the texts of Scripture on which their own dif- b Xll PKEFACE. ferent opinion rests, and then turn to the comments which I have made on those texts respectively. In- tentionally, I am sure, I have not omitted any passage pertaining to the question, or done injustice to the ar- gument which it may be thought by others to uphold. In respect to every passage which I have treated, I have honestly endeavored to ascertain the sense which the writer or speaker had in his mind, and intended to express. The quotations from the Old Testament in the New, have, of course, had a principal share of my attention. In many of these, it has been the opinion of Christian scholars, that Jesus and the Apostles and Evange- lists ascribed supernatural foreknowledge to the post- Mosaic writers of the Old Testament, and even repre- sented as supernatural predictions passages which do not seem naturally to bear that character in their orig- inal use and connection. From an early age of Chris- tianity to the present time, it has been the self-im- posed task of commentators to maintain that this supposed representation, by Evangelists and Apostles, of the sense of the Old Testament writers, was a cor- rect representation. In this argument, I am un- doubtingly of the opinion, that Collins and other in- fidels were right in saying that such commentators have failed. Christianity needs, in this particular, a different defence from what has been made. "William Whiston, the associate and the succes- sor of Sir Isaac Newton as Mathematical Profes- PREFACE. Xlll sor at Cambridge, made a deplorably lame reply to Collins, in his treatises, entitled, " The Literal Accom- plishment of the Scripture Prophecies," and " A Sup- plement to the Literal Accomplishment of the Scrip- ture Prophecies." He assented to both the postulates of his opponent ; namely, first, that the New Testa- ment writers had applied the Old Testament passages in question to the proof of Christianity ; and, sec- ondly, that, in point of fact, those passages, as they now stand, are inapplicable to that use. But he as- sumed the utterly indefensible position, that the Old Testament had, in those passages, been corrupted by the Jews since the Apostles' time, for the very pur- pose of invalidating their argument ; that, as those passages originally stood in the Hebrew Bible, and as they stood at the period when the Apostles quoted them, they were exact descriptions of Jesus, his re- ligion, and his times, and received in him and his Gospel their literal fulfilment ; and that it was only by the perfidious tampering of unbelievers with the records, in the second century, that this correspond- ence had been made to vanish. I do not know that Whiston's reasoning ever satisfied any wise man, ex- cept himself* My very able and learned predecessor and successor in the chair of Biblical Literature at our University have presented a different view of the subject. Ac- ceding to the prevailing opinion, that, when an Evan- * See my " Lowell Lectures," Vol. II. pp. 215, 216. XIV PREFACE. gelist or Apostle made a quotation from the Old Tes- tament with such a form of introduction as " All this was done that it might be fulfilled," &c, he often meant to represent the original writer as having uttered a prediction now accomplished, they hold that the Evan- gelist or Apostle was in error in his interpretation of the language quoted by him. They urge that the commission of the Apostles and Evangelists to preach Christianity does not imply their being divinely se- cured against mistakes on all related subjects ; and that they might be perfectly well qualified to convey to us the miraculous evidence of the doctrine of Je- sus, without being disabused of the false theories in which they had been educated, and made competent expositors of the Jewish Scriptures. An hypothesis which has such advocates is not to be lightly dismissed.* I have given it the best con- * Mr. Norton has lately passed away from the circle of friends who re- vered and loved him with a singular devotion. " My thread of life has even run with his For many a lustre." The first time that, then a child, I heard his name, I was with Mr. Buck- minster, who stopped to accost him. What a conjunction ! Since that day, the thought of one has been scarcely separated from that of the other in my mind. From the moment of my entering on professional studies, I was honored with Mr. Norton's friendship, and, through the many happy years which followed, it made one of the chief joys of my life. I always lived near him afterwards, and eventually, for almost the whole of the last quarter of a century, our homes were side by side. No one who had such opportunities as mine to know the rare extent and thoroughness of his learn- in o - , his religious love of truth, and the punctilious accuracy of his habits of study and of reasoning, could dissent from him without great self-distrust. If there was any man I have known to whom I could feel safe in implicitly submitting my own judgment, it would be he. I differed from him widely on some points of Scriptural criticism, as, the external history of the Pen- PEEFACE. XV sideration of which I am capable, and cannot find reason to accept it. It appears to me, that, if there was any subject on which the disciples of Jesus — Matthew, John, and Peter, his personal companions and Apostles, — Mark and Luke, intimate and con- fidential friends of Apostles, — Paul, fully instructed by Jesus himself in the long seclusion which followed his conversion (Gal. i. 11-19) — may be presumed to have been correctly informed, it was that of the evidences of the religion which they were to publish to the world. It is even particularly recorded, that their Lord, in an appearance to two disciples after his resurrection, " beginning at Moses and all the prophets, expounded unto them in all the Scriptures tateuch, and the use made of the Old Testament by the writers of the New ; but it was with such diffidence as only the most careful and often-repeated revisal of my views would have enabled me to overcome. I know of no theological scholar, who has brought the resources and charms of so various and elegant accomplishments in general learning to be subsidiary to such a rich fund of Scriptural knowledge. His great work on the " Genuineness of the Gospels" — a magnificent monument of erudition, logic, and taste — exhausts the argument, supersedes all that before had been written upon it in modern times, and establishes on an immovable basis that cardinal fact in the Evidences of Christianity. His Translation of the Gospels, with Notes, announced as being now in the printers' hands, is awaited with ear- nest expectation, as a work which may prove not inferior in importance to any that has seen the light since the time of the Reformers. It is greatly to be hoped that it may be followed by such translations and expositions of portions of the Epistles, as he is understood to have left in a state of prep- aration for the press. The void which has been left by the death of this illustrious Christian scholar will not be filled in our age. Surrounded by every thing that could make life desirable, enriching it day by day with dignified employment and benignant kindness, enjoying it for himself and using it for others to the last, he resigned it in sacred peace. " Multis ille bonis flebilis occidit ; Nulli flebilior quam mihi." XVI PREFACE. the things concerning himself" (Luke xxiv. 27). But what is decisive with me is, that, on a careful review of references to the Jewish Scriptures by Evangelists and Apostles, I cannot find an instance of what appears to me misinterpretation on their part. I am not called upon to reconcile their authority as Christian teachers with their misconceptions of the Old Testament, because I do not see that they ever misconceived it. I am persuaded that expositions of that collection of writings, some current in the time of our Saviour, and others, more numerous, in our day, are founded in error; but I am also persuaded that it is error in which the Apostles and Evangelists did not share. The reception of my theory of the Book of Gene- sis, expounded in the " Academical Lectures on the Jewish Scriptures and Antiquities " (Vol. II. pp. 1 - 122), has afforded me great satisfaction. Though well satisfied of its truth, I considered it a novelty, as little likely to find favor as any thing which I had proposed. If substantiated, it puts an end to a world of cavil. A friendly critic in the " Christian Exam- iner" (Vol. LIII. p. 7), while he dissents from other views maintained by me, pronounces this to be " pre- eminently satisfactory," as well as " original," and to "invest the book with a greater interest and higher value than can be assigned to it on any other hy- pothesis " ; and I have been much gratified to ob- serve a tacit adoption of this feature of my scheme in other authoritative quarters. PEEFACE. XV11 My argument in the present work (pp. 5-16), that the descent of our Lord from King David was no peculiarity, but a fact equally predicable of the gen- erality of his Jewish contemporaries, will strike read- ers at first with surprise. But it is only a different application of what Jews and Christians unanimously recognize in another case. The time between David and Jesus was somewhat more than a thousand years. The time between Jacob and David was a century less. (See " Lectures," &c, Vol. II. pp. 130, 131.) But everybody understands the millions of Jews in Da- vid's time to have been all descended from Jacob. I desire it may be remembered that my reasoning (pp. 233 - 237) from the construction of the Hebrew word corresponding to the word " justify " in the New Testament, is an independent passage, and may be thrown out without invalidating the rest of the argu- ment. It seems, however, that, with equal fidelity to the Hebrew original, the Greek translators might have used some word corresponding to rectify, instead of "justify"; and that, had they done so, while the tech- nical character of the expression would have been made manifest, an entirely different direction would have been given to theological speculation. When, for brevity's sake, I have used the expres- sion, "the pseudo-Isaiah" (e. g. p. 172), I must not be understood as implying that the author of the writings erroneously imputed to Isaiah (xl. - lxvi.) XV111 PKEFACE. designed to pass them off as productions of that prophet. The contrary is apparent. It was a sub- sequent compiler who arranged with the works of Isaiah those compositions from a later hand. (" Lec- tures," &c., Vol. III. pp. 180, 181.) I have a few times referred, in the following pages, to my " Lowell Lectures on the Evidences of Chris- tianity." But the frequent references to " Lectures, §*c." are always intended to indicate a different work ; namely, the " Academical Lectures on the Jewish Scriptures and Antiquities." The texts commented upon are printed so as to represent the readings of Griesbach's Critical Edition, being copied from my edition, in 1830, of the " New Testament in the Common Version, conformed to Griesbach's Standard Greek Text." If, in many instances, I have seemed but to encum- ber the page, by reprinting, with a simple reference to another place, some text which, with or without some verbal difference, had occurred and been dis- cussed in a previous part of the book, I have con- sidered this method to be necessary for the reader's convenience, who might have his attention turned to the same sentence, as it was presented in one or another portion of the New Testament. He might, for instance, look for a comment on Mark i. 11 in its place, and he should either find it there, or else be PREFACE. XIX referred for it, as he is (p. 129), to the remarks on the corresponding passage in Matthew iii. 17. Some of the views and arguments which I present are original with me, and the illustrations the fruits of my own reading in the authors quoted. Others are drawn from the common stock of earlier criticisms, of which the later commentator freely avails himself, with more or less change, or without change, in the application. For others yet, I am specially indebted to this or that writer. And there remains a por- tion, of which I am now entirely unable to trace the source, so as to refer them to one or another of the classes above defined. I have framed most of these notes out of memoranda accumulated through a course of years, during which I was lecturing on the New Testament, and was used to set down all that occurred as suited to my purpose, generally without noting the source whence it was derived, whether from other commentaries, or from my independent reflections and investigations. Under these circumstances, it would not be possible for me with any completeness to indi- cate respectively the origin of the remarks which I have brought together ; and I have thought it best wholly to decline an attempt so impracticable for my- self, and so fruitless for the reader. I am little con- cerned, whether more or less of what I propose shall be found novel. Enough for me, should it prove true and useful. "How well I have succeeded in my design, the XX PREFACE. reader is now to judge. Perhaps it may be thought that I have mistaken the meaning of some passages of Scripture. All that I can say for myself is this only ; — that in the explication of so many, it is well if I have not ; that I have sincerely endeavored to follow truth, being very little solicitous where it led me ; that, if I have failed, yet this I am sure of, that my intentions were good and upright. But if I have made it appear, that the writers of the New Testament argue strictly and very rationally, even in those points where our adversaries represent them as arguing very weakly and absurdly, I hope I have done no disservice to the cause of Christ." (Preface to Sykes's " Essay on the Truth of the Christian Religion.") Cambridge, Massachusetts, April 4th, 1854. CONTENTS PAGE Gospel of Matthew 1 Gospel of Mark 128 Gospel of Luke 136 Gospel of John 166 Acts of the Apostles 187 Epistle to the Romans . 225 First Epistle to the Corinthians 266 Second Epistle to the Corinthians 279 Epistle to the Galatians . 282 Epistle to the Ephesians ....... 290 *Epistle to the Philippians. Epistle to the Colossians 294 *First Epistle to the Thessalonians. Second Epistle to the Thessalonians ..... 294 First Epistle to Timothy 295 Second Epistle to Timothy . 296 Epistle to Titus ......... 302 *Epistle to Philemon. Epistle to the Hebrews 311 Epistle of James 331 First Epistle of Peter . 303 Second Epistle of Peter ........ 334 First Epistle of John 310 *Second Epistle of John. *Third Epistle of John. Epistle of Jude . 339 Revelation of St. John the Divine 343 * These books contain no such reference to the Old Testament as to bring them within the plan of the present work. NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE NEW TESTAMENT. PART I. NARRATIVE BOOKS. SECTION I. GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. I. 1.* Christ, the son of David, the son of Abraham. These titles, applied to Jesus, the founder of our religion, refer to the Old Testament, and must be ex- plained from it. 1. Jesus is surnamed Christ. The Greek word Christ (xP L(7T °s) an d the Hebrew word Messiah (IV?>D) are equivalent. (John i. 41.) They both mean anointed. Part of the ceremony of inducting the Jewish kings into their office consisted in pouring a perfumed oil upon their heads. (Judges ix. 8 ; 1 Sam. * I shall not treat the question respecting the genuineness of the first two chapters of Matthew's Gospel. The external evidence against them consists in a statement of Epiphanius (A. D. circ. 360) that they were wanting from the copies in the hands of the Ebionites (" Sanct. Epiph, Opp.," "Adv. Hser.," cap. xxx.§ 13, Tom. I. p. 138, edit. Petav.), a statement thought to derive confirmation from a notice by Eusebius (" Hist. Eccles.," Lib. iii. cap. 27), as well as by earlier fathers, of the disbelief of some of the Jewish Christians in the doctrine of the miraculous conception. The internal evidence, which resolves itself mainly into the question of a recon- ciliation of the passage with the introduction to Luke's Gospel, is dis- cussed by Mr. Norton (" Evidences of the Genuineness of the Gospels," Vol. I., Additional Notes, pp. liii.-lxii.) with his characteristic eminent ability. 1 2 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 1. ix. 16; x. 1; xvi. 13; 2 Sam. ii. 4; v. 3; xix. 10; 1 Kings i. 39; Ps. ii. 2; xx. 6.) Now the " prophet " who had been predicted by the founder of the Jewish institutions, and described by Moses as "like unto himself" (Deut. xviii. 15- 18), had, in the course of time, come to be conceived of by the nation under the different character of a king. (Comp. John i. 41, 45, 49.) How this concep- tion grew up, I have explained at large in another work, to which I refer, instead of here going again over the same ground. (" Lectures on the Jewish Scrip- tures and Antiquities," Vol. II. pp. 377-386; III. 18 - 21 ; IV. 306, 307.) From the age of David down, the advent of that illustrious personage, of David's blood, who was to exalt his country to a vast domin- ion, and make Jerusalem, his capital, the admiration and delight of the whole earth, was the darling hope of every Jew. In their times of prosperity, they had looked for the speedy fulfilment of that hope. In their depression and distress, it had been their re- source against despair. It was not only, as some writers seem to suppose, at the era of the first Csesars, that they were expecting their royal hero. They were looking for him in every period from that of the foundation of their monarchy, and especially in every period when the aspect of public affairs seemed so doleful that no help, short of his, would avail. As this person, according to their erroneous concep- tion, was to be a king in the common acceptation of that word, a fit name for him was the anointed (comp. e. g. 2 Sam. ii. 7 ; iii. 39), the Christ, the Messiah. This particular name, it is true, does not appear to have been ever applied to him by any Old Testament writer, unless we understand him to be designated by the word in a Psalm probably written by David. (Ps. I. 1.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 3 ii. 2; comp. "Lectures on the Jewish Scriptures," &c., Vol. IV. p. 317.) But no fact is more familiar to a reader of the New Testament, than that, in the time of Jesus, the word was in constant use among the Jews in the application which I have described. Erroneous as was the apprehension entertained by the Jews concerning the illustrious personage who, in God's good time, was to appear among them, it was, however, founded upon a basis of truth. It had had its origin in the revelation, which, fifteen centuries before, Moses had been inspired to utter, that God would send to them " a prophet," or teacher, to be, like Moses, the publisher of new truth, and the found- er of new institutions. In the ages after Moses, the genuine idea expressed in his words had, through natural tendencies of the human mind, been obscured, and its prime element had been made secondary. It was still believed that God's new messenger would be a " prophet," that is, a teacher. But it was believed that he would execute this office, that he would extend the truth, chiefly by his victorious arms ; and the attributes of the religious reformer were subordinated in the popular thought to those of the powerful and magnificent sovereign. Jesus was the personage whom Moses had predicted. The Jews of the time of Jesus were looking for the personage predicted by Moses, though, like their an- cestors from a time at least as far back as that of Da- vid, they so greatly misconceived his character. It was the personage foretold by Moses, ill as they un- derstood him, that they had in view when they spoke of the Messiah, or Christ Jesus, therefore, when the time came for him to assert his claims distinctly (Matt. xvi. 13-17), rightly claimed to be the person denoted by that title. (" Lectures," &c, Vol. II. pp. 382 - 384.) 4 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 2-6. Matthew, in the verse before us, omitting the defi- nite article, uses the word Christ like a proper name. He does not say " Jesus the Christ," but " Jesus Christ." The explanation of this is, that, after Jesus had come to be fully recognized by his disciples as the Messiah who had been expected, his proper name and his official name became to them equivalent. During his stay on earth, the word Christ does not appear ever to have been applied to him except in the sense of the official designation. After his ascension, it almost, in the use of his disciples, superseded that of Jesus as his proper appellative, an effect to which, as Dr. Campbell well remarks, the commonness of the name Jesus among the Jews may have contributed. (" The Four Gospels Translated," &c, Vol. -I. p. 225.) I. 2-6. Abraham begat Isaac and Jesse begat David the king. From Judah, great-grandson of Abraham, to King David, the genealogy recorded by Matthew is, with slight differences in the forms of some names, the same as that in two passages of the Old Testament, which were probably his authority for it. (Ruth iv. 18-22, and 1 Chron. ii. 4-12.) The tracing of the parentage of Jesus through Jacob and Isaac up to Abraham, connects him with the promises to those patriarchs recorded in the book of Genesis (xxii. 18; xxvi. 4; xxviii. 14). I. 6-12. David the king begat Solomon and Salathiel begat Zo- robabel. This is nearly the same genealogy as that in the First Book of Chronicles (iii. 10-19). Three names and de- I. 13-16.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 5 scents, however, contained in that list as belonging to the time between Solomon and the Captivity, are here omitted; namely, the names of Joash, Amaziah, and Azariah. (Comp. 1 Chron. iii. 11, 12.) As the reigns of these three kings had been treated at length in the historical books, they cannot be supposed to have been unknown to the compiler of Matthew's genealogy, and the omission must be explained as a device to favor the Jewish conceit by which the time between Abra- ham and Jesus is distributed into equal periods, con- sisting of twice seven generations each. (Comp. Matt, i. 17.) In the same way it seems that we are to ex- plain the omission of the names of Jehoiakim and Pedaiah. (With Matt. i. 11, 12, comp. 1 Chron. iii. 15 -19.) And it appears to have been as a further ac- commodation to this plan, and an additional aid to the memory, that David and Josiah are both counted twice ; that is, each, once at the beginning, and once at the end, of a series of fourteen names. I. 13-16. Zorobabel begat Abiud and "Jacob begat Joseph the hus- band of Mary, of whom was born Jesus, who is called Christ. The Old Testament nowhere traces the royal line of David further down than Zerubbabel, except in a dis- jointed and unintelligible list of names in the First Book of Chronicles (1 Chron. iii. 19-24), in which the name of Abiucl (son of Zerubbabel, according to Matt. i. 13) does not occur, nor that of any one of Abiud's descendants. From what source Matthew obtained his information, whether from public or fam- ily registers, he has not told us, and we have no means of ascertaining. Whatever may be one's views of Matthew's inspira- 1* 6 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 13-16. tion, it is entirely foreign from the purpose to say that Matthew had this list of names by supernatural illu- mination. The person who affirms this (unless he can show that Luke did not intend to give the genealogy of the putative father of Jesus) will have to maintain that another Evangelist (comp. Luke iii. 23-31) was at the same time made acquainted, in the same super- natural way, with an account of the parentage of Jo- seph, very different from that revealed to Matthew. But I do not now dwell upon this. What I have to say is, that inspiration is in the present instance out of the question. However material in other cases, it cannot possibly be in this case an element in the ar- gument, for the reason that the kind of proof here undertaken by Matthew is one to which, of its proper nature, supernatural illumination does not correspond, and to which it can afford no help. For some reason, Matthew undertook to represent to his readers that Joseph, husband of Mary the mother of Jesus, was descended from David. In the nature of things there was only one satisfactory way to do this ; namely, by appealing to the documentary, or (wanting this) the oral, traditionary evidence which went to show that such was the fact. Had there been ancient records containing an opposite representation, it would have been in vain that Matthew would have contradicted them on the ground of alleged supernatural illumina- tion. What he said by such illumination would of course have been true, but how could he have shown it to be so ? If there had been no records relating to the question, it would have been a question which there would have been no occasion for him to touch, and which, in their absence, he could not have treated to any advantage. It would be preposterous to repre- sent the Evangelist as proposing to bring the claims of I. 13-16.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 7 Jesus to the test of a correspondence of his actual descent with a genealogical list which to him (Mat- thew) was only known by inspiration, and so could only be known to his readers on his authority. If there were records existing which represented Joseph as descended from David, then, and then only, was there something pertinent for Matthew to say upon the subject. But, on that supposition, it is plain that his apostolical authority was in no sort responsible for the correctness of the list. He took it as he found it in the hands of his countrymen, and merely called their attention to it. The very nature of the argu- ment precluded him from presenting on his own re- sponsibility the facts with which he invited his coun- trymen to compare the circumstances of his Master's appearance. If they were not already in possession of the facts from sources other than his statement, there could be no place for the argument which he holds. In my " Lectures on the Jewish Scriptures," &c„ I have reasoned at large that the ancient Jews had no divine authority whatever for the opinion, which, from the time of David, prevailed among them, that the " Prophet " predicted by Moses, the personage ideal- ized by them as the " Messiah," was to be the de- scendant, representative, successor, and heir of David. But, it will be asked, if the ancient Jewish writers (the Psalmists, and Prophets) were not supernaturally apprised of the fact that the Christ was to be the son, the descendant, of David, how came it to pass that Jesus, the Christ, actually was David's descendant? Does not the fact that the Christ, when he came, ac- tually turned out to be one of David's lineage, prove that those who, centuries before, had described him as of David's lineage, were divinely inspired ? I reply,— 8 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 13-16. 1. How do we know that Jesus was of David's lin- eage % Do we know it from Matthew 1 Matthew says nothing of the sort. He says that Joseph, the hus- band of Jesus's mother, was descended from David. But he says positively and circumstantially (if the first two chapters of his Gospel are genuine) that Jesus was not Joseph's son ; that he had no human father ; that, in short, he had no relation whatever to the line traced up from Joseph to David. 2. But now let us suppose that Jesus was in some sense the son of Joseph, though Matthew (i. 16, 18 - 25) appears very distinctly to deny to him that parent- age ; and that Joseph was shown by the genealogical registers to be one of the posterity of David. Or rather, independently of the genealogy of Matthew, let us as- sume, what I think the Apostles understood to be the fact (Acts xiii. 23 ; Rom. i. 3 ; 2 Tim. ii. 8), that Jesus was a descendant from David (that is, through Mary, his only earthly parent). How far will any consider- ate person maintain that this goes towards proving the supernatural knowledge of those ancient writers who looked for a descendant of David in the Messiah % Was there any thing peculiar in being a descendant of David 1 Were there so few descendants of David in Judea at the time of the birth of Jesus, that, when Jesus appeared to combine the two characters of the Christ and a son of David, the writers who had identi- fied the Christ with one of David's blood must be held to have been divinely inspired % On the contrary, it is probable that at the time of the birth of Jesus there were in his country extremely few native Jews who were not of David's blood, though whether they would be able to prove that descent would depend on the condition of the ancient records. If the Messiah was to be a Palestine Jew, it could I. 13-16.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 9 scarcely be that the second king of Israel would not be one of his ancestors ; — in other words, his ances- tor, for the glory of David would overshadow all other ancestral dignity. This may seem extraordinary, but it is as certain as the evidence of figures. The time between David and Jesus was a little more than a thousand years. A thousand years, according to the common way of reck- oning, are equivalent to thirty generations, though twenty-five years are not a short time for population to double in, under favorable circumstances, and this would give forty duplications in ten centuries. The pas- sage before us distributes (i. 17) the thousand years between David and Jesus into twenty-eight generations, which very evidently is an inaccurate statement on the side of brevity, because four names are omitted, while only one is repeated. We will, however, assume the number of twenty- eight generations. There were twenty-eight persons in the series, each of whom lived long enough to have children. Now, if a man has two children, and if his descendants, taken one with another, have two chil- dren each, and if his posterity do not in any instance intermarry with each other, his posterity in the twenty- eighth generation will be two hundred and sixty-eight millions and a half in number ; considerably more than a quarter part of the present estimated popula- tion of the globe.* But, though a low ratio of increase is here assumed, this vast multiplication of individuals from one parent stock will not in fact take place, because, at different removes, descendants from one and the same parent * If any one doubts about the correctness of this statement, let him look at the following table, in which the first column represents the successive 10 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 13-16. stock will intermarry with each other, and, as often as that takes place, the duplication of its posterity is ar- rested for that generation ; that is to say, when David's great-grandson marries David's great-granddaughter, the children of this union, whatever be their number, will constitute no larger a number of descendants from David than if only one of the parents had been of David's lineage. Allowance is to be made for this, and it will of course cause the number of descendants from one pair to fall very far below what it would be, if those descendants had uniformly contracted matri- mony with persons of different ancestry. Another allowance is to be made. The Jewish gene- alogies scarcely admitted the names of females. With them, a man was represented as descended from another man, only when he was descended from him in an un- broken male line. Such is the construction of both the genealogies of Jesus in the New Testament. Ac- generations from the first to the twenty-eighth, and the second the increase within that time, by duplication from a single pair : — 1 2 2 4 3 8 4 16 5 32 6 64 7 128 8 256 9 512 10 1024 11 2048 12 4096 13 8192 14 16384 15 32768 16 65536 17 131072 18 262144 19 524288 20 1048576 21 2097152 22 4194304 23 8388608 24 16777216 25 33554432 26 67108864 27 134217728 28 268435456 See the article Consanguinity in the " Encyclopaedia Britannica," if these principles do not appear too simple to require further elucidation. You and I, reader, have had more than a thousand millions of progenitors since the time of the Saxon heptarchy. Whoever you are, it is extremely probable that the blood of Egbert of England, and of Egbert's meanest menial, runs in the veins of both of us. I. 13-16.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 11 cording to the Jewish view, then, the " sons of David " in the time of Jesus were only as many persons as were connected with David by a line of sons and fa- thers. No account was made of daughters and moth- ers in this heraldry. According to our modern usages, by which the wife takes the husband's name at mar- riage, that class of descendants which bears the fam- ily name exactly corresponds to that of which alone the Jews took notice in their genealogies.* Again ; by no means all the posterity of David lived in Judea at the time of our Saviour's birth. Some fifty thousand persons only, a mere fraction of the de- scendants of those who had been carried away at the captivity, returned with Zerubbabel and Ezra. (Ez. ii. 64, 65 ; viii. 1 - 14.) Still those who did return were of the tribes of Judah (David's tribe) and Benjamin, and principally of the former. And it may be pre- sumed that, among the exiles who returned, one class preponderated, namely, that of the families whose head could trace his descent in the male line from David. The opinion had then for centuries been rooted in the national mind, that the male line of David was des- tined to give a magnificent monarch to Israel. Of course, they who knew themselves to be within the range of that distinction might be expected to be most forward to avail themselves of the Persian king's per- mission to return to the theatre of their past and fu- ture greatness. In other words, for this special reason, as well as on the more general basis of calculation, it may be fairly presumed, that of the returning exiles who repossessed and repeopled Judea, and were the * The occasional incidental mention of women in genealogies (i. e. Gen. xxv. 1 ; xxxv. 23 - 26 ; Matt. i. 3, 5, 6) constitutes no exception to this re- mark. Names of men are always given as constituting the links in the chain ; names of women, never. 12 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 13-16. progenitors of the Jews contemporary with our Lord, a very large portion were of the male line of David. Make what allowances we will for such reasons as have been suggested, still, so many scores of mil- lions are to be thrown away from the rough computa- tion of the number of David's posterity at the end of a thousand years, before we come down to the actual population of Palestine at that time, that we may be strongly inclined to the opinion, that a very large por- tion of the population at that time was descended in the male line from David, and that not to belong to that lineage was rather the exception than the rule. And it is further to be remembered, in confirmation of this view, that in the earliest steps of the succession, where, from the nature of geometrical increase, the number of sons would have a more important effect than at any other place in the series on the number at the end of the line, we happen to be informed that the number of sons was considerable. David is re- lated to have had by his wives no fewer than nineteen (1 Chron. iii. 1-9), and his grandson, Rehoboam, twenty-eight (2 Chron. xi. 21). These instances, if taken into the calculation, would increase immensely the probable number of David's posterity in the male line at the end of twenty-eight generations. Num- bers might belong to that line without knowing it, or without the existence of any evidence to establish their title. And it would be a palpable mistake to suppose that, when the title " Son of David " was oc- casionally applied to our Lord (e. g. Matt. ix. 27), it was done by those who had investigated his genealogy, and who regarded the mere fact of being descended from David as a distinction. He was addressed, in such instances, as the particular son of David, who it was hoped would assume his ancestor's royal preroga- I. 13-16.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 13 tive. He was greeted not merely as one who had David's blood in his veins, for in that an indefinite number of persons might compete with him ; but as that son who it was hoped would ascend David's throne. In other words, a synonyme of the title Messiah was used. But if these views are correct, why, it will be asked, should Evangelists think it worth while to show the descent of Jesus from David, supposing that Matthew has undertaken in some sense to do so % I reply, in the first place, that the descent of a dis- tinguished person is always an object of curiosity, and always a fit subject for his biographer. Had the gene- alogical lists represented Jesus, not as a descendant from David, but as having some origin less dignified, it would have been suitable for the author of a memoir of his life and ministry to record the result of his inquiries upon that point. Still more was the topic an interesting one, if the lists were found to represent Jesus as connected with the greatest of Jewish kings by a line running through Zerubbabel, the restorer of the nation after its great overthrow. But if the object was to point out circumstantially the descent of Jesus from David, in order to show that in him were fulfilled supernatural predictions uttered ages before, how comes it that we never, in the Gospels or Acts, find that argument presented for the conviction of unbe- lievers % Of all the characters in which the expected Messiah, as erroneously understood, is set forth by the ancient writers, none is more prominent than that of David's son. If, as the common interpretation sup- poses, his being David's descendant was a distinguish- ing fact, revealed ages before, to the end that, when he should come, the conformity of his lineage with that declaration should be one means of establishing his 2 14 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE " [I. 13-16. claim, how, I repeat the question, could it fail to be continually appealed to by Jesus and his Apostles for that purpose, when they called the attention of their countrymen to that claim] By both Jesus and his ministers, after he had announced himself as the Mes- siah, no argument could have been more fit to be urged with emphasis and repetition. But Jesus never once appealed to his extraction in corroboration of his claim. So far from it, that he once used language (Matt. xxii. 41 - 45 ; Mark xii. 35 - 37 ; Luke xx. 41 - 44) which it would have been not at all surprising if his hearers had interpreted as an intimation that they were wrong in supposing that the Messiah would be one of David's posterity. Certainly, it had no ten- dency to make them regard that pedigree as a sign of the Messiah. And though Peter and Paul, the for- mer in one instance, the latter in three (Acts ii. 29 - 32 ; xiii. 23 ;■ Rom. i. 3 ; 2 Tim. ii. 8), refer to the descent of Jesus from David, this is by no means presenting the topic with such frequency as, supposing it to be of the nature commonly imagined, we should expect, nor does either of these Apostles give such a statement of the genealogy of Jesus as would have been neces- sary to complete the argument on the common under- standing of it. Paul never calls Jesus expressly , the " son of David." In the three passages in which he refers to his descent, he speaks of him as " of the seed of David." Does not this peculiarity of expression denote that, having no human father, Paul did not think Jesus a " son of David " in the sense of the Old Testament writers of and after David's time, though he was of the posterity of David through Mary 1 * * May the suggestion be permitted, that the nativity of the Messiah as the son of David's daughter was the only nativity which would neither confirm, on the one hand, nor positively contradict, on the other, the un- founded expectation of the Jews ? I. 13-16.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 15 Still, I think that, supposing the passage under our notice to have been an original part of Matthew's Gospel, a reason with him for its insertion may have been to remove from the minds of his countrymen a prejudice against Jesus, by showing them that, if their genealogical registers spoke the truth, his descent (supposing him to be a son of Joseph, as well as of Joseph's wife) was actually such as to correspond with an arbitrary standard by which they were resolved to try the Messiah's claims. " Shall Christ come out of Galilee 1 " asked some of them ; " hath not the Scrip- ture said that Christ cometh of the seed of David, and out of the town of Bethlehem, where David was % " (John vii. 41, 42.) They were in error. They fell into the error through ascribing supernatural au- thority to writings which did not possess it. God had instructed his people that in good time he would " raise up unto them a prophet like unto Moses." He had not instructed them that that prophet should be a descendant from David. Still, so prevalent was that idea among the contemporaries of Jesus and Matthew, especially among those of them who adhered to the sect of the Pharisees, that from many minds a great stumbling-block in the way of a reception of Jesus would be removed by an appeal to records which de- clared that King David was a progenitor of Jesus. And if such registers were known by Matthew to exist, it was much more in the way of his duty to pro- duce them and so to satisfy a prejudice, than it would have been to delay, in any quarter, the reception of the Gospel with which he was charged, till such time as he should be able to clear away from the minds of dull and unlearned Jews the mistakes entertained by them concerning the sense and authority of ancient writings. Supposing this suggestion to be well found- 16 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 19. ed, we shall understand Matthew to be addressing them thus : You expect the Messiah to be a son of David, because you think that authorized messengers of God have so declared. By this you mean, accord- ing to the established force of such language among you, that the Messiah is to be a descendant from David in the male line. In that sense, however, Jesus was not a son of David, or of any man. He was miracu- lously born of only a female earthly parent. But if any of you deny this, and think he was a son of Jo- seph, then, on your own grounds, you may receive him for the Messiah, for Joseph was David's son. I. 19. Joseph was minded to put her away privily. For the law of divorce among the Jews, see " Lec- tures," &c, Vol. I. pp. 471, 472. I. 21. Thou shalt call his name Jesus ; for he shall save his people from their sins. The name Jesus ('I^o-oO?) is but the Greek form of the Hebrew Joshua (#Vu'1n*), which means deliverer or saviour, being derived from the verb ()}V?\) signify- ing he saved. It appears to have been a not uncom- mon name among the Jews, at any period. The New Testament uses it in reference to the ancient contem- porary of Moses, and to a contemporary of the Apos- tles (Acts vii. 45 ; Heb. iv. 8 ; Col. iv. 11) ; and accord- ing to several manuscripts (see Griesbach, " Nov. Test." ad loc.) the question of Pilate (Matt, xxvii. 17) should read, " Which will you that I release to you, Jesus Barabbas, or Jesus called Christ % " Origen says (" Opp.," Tom. III. p. 918, edit. Delarue) that in many 1.22,23.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 17 manuscripts of his day the name Jesus was omitted before Barabbas ; and u perhaps," he adds, " correctly, the name Jesus being inappropriate to a wicked man." I. 22, 23. Now all this was done that it might be fulfilled which was spoken of the Lord by the prophet, saying, Behold, a virgin shall be with child, and shall bring forth a son, and they shall call his name Emmanuel, which is, being interpreted, God with us. In the first place, what is the Evangelist's meaning when he says that the words which he quotes from Isaiah (vii. 14) were words " spoken of the Lord by the prophet " ? They are said to be " spoken of the Lord," because they are part of the discourse which Isaiah, in the poetical form in which he has cast the remonstrance addressed by himself to Ahaz, has rep- resented the Lord as speaking ; they are part of the discourse which Isaiah has (so to speak) put into the mouth of the Lord (Is. vii. 10, 14; comp. "Lectures," &c., Vol. II. pp. -115-417). — "By the prophet" (hia tov TTpofoirov). Rather, in the prophet ; that is, in the prophecy. (Comp. " Lectures," II. 387 ; IV. 414, note §.) Aid, says Bretschneider (" Lexicon in Lib. N. T." ad voc), " is freely used by the Septuagint translators in rendering the prefixes 5 0^) an d J?." (For instances of Sid signifying in, see also Rom. iv. 11 ; 1 Tim. ii. 15 ; 1 Pet. iii. 20.) But it is quite im- material, for the explanation of the text before us, to put this meaning upon 8id. The words were spoken by the prophet, because they are words of his com- position ; at the same time that they may properly be said to have been spoken of that is, by the Lord, in the sense above expounded. The question respecting the purpose with which passages of the Old Testament are quoted and applied 2* 18 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 22,23. by the writers of the New Testament, and by Jesus, their Master, in words of his reported by them, so far as that purpose is to be inferred from the form of lan- guage with which a quotation is introduced, is fully presented by this text. I shall, therefore, here treat the subject at some length, with statements and argu- ments to be referred to in the criticism of other texts, of the same description, which will come under our notice as we proceed. I will, in the first place, state my general views concerning the objects and force of those quotations in the New Testament from the Old, which give rise to questions of interpretation. In this respect I class them under four heads, which I will specify in lan- guage used by me in an earlier work. 1. "To the first head belong those passages, which really were supernatural predictions, and really are referred to as such. For instance, when our Lord says, that Moses wrote of him (John v. 46), I under- stand him to refer to the supernaturally conveyed knowledge possessed by Moses of his future advent and character ; a knowledge naturally incident to Moses's office as minister of the preparatory dispensa- tion, and expressed by him, for example, in that prophecy appealed to by Peter in an address to his countrymen (Acts iii. 22) : c A prophet shall the Lord your God raise up unto you of your brethren, like unto me ; him shall ye hear in all things ' (Deut. xviii. 15) ; as well as in Moses's record of the promise made to the first three Hebrew patriarchs, that in their pos- terity should ' all the kingdoms of the earth be blessed.' (Gen. xii. 3 ; xviii. 18 ; xxii. 18 ; xxvi. 4.) " And on this class of references, being to real proof texts, — supernatural predictions fulfilled, — I find occasion for two remarks. The first is, that they pre- I. 22, 23.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 19 sent no difficulty whatever in their application. The use of them in the New Testament does not strike the reader as foreign to their original sense, On the con- trary, it is the sense which he would naturally put upon them as they stand in their original connection. Secondly, I consider every instance of this class of references to he to the Law, the Pentateuch, the fiye books of the supernaturally endowed lawgiver Moses ; and not to any other part of Old Testament Scripture." (" Lowell Lectures on the Evidences of Christianity," Vol. II. pp. 237, 238.) 2. In the second class of these quotations, " nothing but a legitimate rhetorical accommodation is designed. They are taken, as from their nature they may well be, indifferently from all parts of the Old Testament collection." (Ibid. p. 239.) 3. " The third class of the texts in question consists of those, which are produced as references to, or proof of, the opinions entertained in ancient times concern- ing the Messiah who was eventually to appear ; and, when produced from any other part of the Old Testa- ment except the Pentateuch, they leave it an open question, as far as the mention of the Messiah is con- cerned, whether the authors of the language quoted possessed any supernatural information concerning him. That a great prophet was to come after himself, could be a fact known to Moses only through a direct divine communication. There was no other source whence he could derive it. They who came after him, however, knew it from his own recorded declaration ; and, for a series of ages, every Jew, on Moses's au- thority, without any new inspiration of his own on the subject, confidently and joyfully recognized the fact. Sometimes this last class of texts, indicative of the opinions of times between Moses and Jesus 20 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 22, 23. respecting the coming Messiah, the nature of his office, the extent of his kingdom, and the spirit of his faith, are used by the Apostles in argument with the Jews of their own day. But there is no instance of this kind, where the argument used implies an asser- tion, on the part of the New Testament writers, of supernatural authority possessed by the authors of the Old Testament language which they quote." (Ibid, p. 241 ; comp. Acts xv. 15 - 18 ; Rom. ix. 26.) 4. " The remaining class of the texts in question, akin to that last mentioned, does not so commonly comprehend particular quotations, but consists rather of references to the general tenor of the Old Testa- ment, showing to the Jews, that, on their own princi- ples of interpretation, without arguing the question whether those principles were correct or not, Old Tes- tament Scripture did not supply them with those ob- jections to the faith of Jesus which they imagined." (Ibid. pp. 242, 243 ; comp. 1 Cor. xv. 3, 4.) The quotation before us belongs, in my opinion, to the second of the classes above specified. The nature of such quotations as I consider to be exemplified by this text, I am now to illustrate. It is a common habit of writers, to give vivacity and variety to their compositions, by adopting from other well-known writers language which, either in its origi- nal sense, or in a sense which it is capable of expres- sing, is applicable to the case in hand. The more famous and the more familiar an author is, the more will he be quoted from in this way. Daniel Heinsius, the editor of Homer, says that there is scarcely a line of that poet, which has not been used by some ancient, in a sense different from that of the original. (Mich. " Introduction to the N. T.," Part I. chap. V. § 1.) It is a tendency of the mind, of the same nature as that I. 22, 23.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 21 which leads a speaker or writer to apply to the subject which he is treating, the terms of that branch of knowledge or practice with which he is conversant. Thus, the clergyman is often found employing his scriptural or theological vocabulary in his conversation about common things ; and the lawyer and the physi- cian, the farmer and the sailor, the chemist and the mechanic, convey and illustrate their ideas by phrase- ology supplied by the terms of their respective sciences and arts. If to any subject which they treated, native Jews, like other men, were to apply language of which their memory was full, of what language would they avail themselves but that of their Scriptures % If, like other men, native Jews, for the common purposes of style and expression, were to quote freely from es- teemed and familiar writers, from what writers should they quote except from those of the Old Testament I That collection comprehended almost the whole of their literature ; it comprehended all of their litera- ture which was of considerable antiquity and esti- mation. Their memories were so crowded with the language of the lawgiver and the old chroniclers and poets of the nation, that it would perpetually pre- sent itself unbidden, as often as any thing occurred which it would fitly describe ; and the allusions which it embodied were not only of a character dignified and exciting to the reader, but of a character of peculiar dignity and sacredness. How natural, and to a Jew how graceful, to embellish a narrative or description by the remark, " This reminds us of what we read of in such or such a place in Old Testament history " ; or, " This might be well described by language used on a different occasion by this or that ancient prophet." It would be easy, but it would be unprofitable, to 22 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 22, 23. crowd these pages with examples from Pagan, Chris- tian, and Jewish writers, of the kind of quotation of which I speak. The correctness of the general state- ment which alone I have made thus far, will not be disputed in any quarter. But, it will be said, the stress of the question lies in the form of words by which a quotation is occasionally introduced by a New Testament writer. In particular, when Matthew says, in the text now before us, " All this ivas done that it might be fulfilled" &c, must he not be understood as saying, that events were supernaturally ordered so as to bring about an accomplishment of what had been supernaturally foreknown by Isaiah seven or eight centuries earlier, and declared by him in the passage which Matthew proceeds to quote % I will draw no argument from the original meaning of the passage in Isaiah ; because, on the one hand, we may misunderstand it, and, on the other hand, it is in a certain sense a supposable case that Matthew may have misunderstood it, though I believe nothing of that kind. But I answer, — 1. Looking no further than to Matthew's own representation in this case, is it possible to under- stand him as declaring any thing of the kind sup- posed ] What does he say ] He says that part of the prediction (if prediction it had been) was as fol- lows : " They shall call his name Emmanuel (which is, being interpreted, ' God with us ')." Did they call his name Emmanuel ? By no means. Matthew him- self declares just the contrary, in the next verse but one (i. 25). He says that Joseph " called his name Jesus." And he says, further, that this was done agree- ably to a direction given to Joseph in a dream ; name- ly, " thou shalt call his name Jesus, for he shall save his people from their sins " (i. 21). It is impossible I. 22, 23.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 23 to understand Matthew as representing Isaiah's lan- guage to be a prediction of Jesus, when Matthew himself declares that in one particular, which, sup- posing a prediction, was a substantive part of it as much as any other, it was actually contradicted by the event. 2. There are four other instances in the New Testa- ment of a quotation being introduced, or a reference being made, by the same or a similar form of words (Matt. xxi. 4 ; xxvi. 56 ; John xv. 25 ; xix. 36). I shall treat of them in their respective places. At present I only ask whether any careful reader, be he Christian or infidel, really supposes John to have im- agined that the direction to the Israelites (in Exod. xii. 46) not to break the bones of the lamb eaten at the annual Paschal feast, so as to taste the marrow, was a prediction of the proceeding of the Roman sol- diers when they dealt with the body of Jesus differ- ently from the bodies of the thieves crucified with him. (John xix. 36.) Common sense has some claims, and it has only one answer to such a question. And if we will not undertake to maintain that John, when he used the words, " These things were done, that the Scripture should be fulfilled," &c., must be understood as indicating a literal prediction, then clearly we are ir. every other instance precluded from doing so by arguments drawn from the mere form of the language. 3. From the nature of the argument, it is essential that, when an instance of supernatural foreknowledge is alleged, the precise words of the alleged prediction should be produced, to be compared with the actual event. But, in the present instance, this is not done. The variation from both the Hebrew and the Septua- gint in Matthew's word corresponding to they shall call, may be unimportant except as showing that Matthew 24 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 22, 23. was not quoting with that scrupulous exactness which belongs to the kind of argument (erroneously, as I think) attributed to him in the present instance. But this it does show ; and this is a fact material to the inquiry in which we are engaged. A more significant fact is the rendering of the Hebrew word (HD?!?), which means a young woman, married or unmarried, by a word which so limits its sense as to denote only an unmarried female ; a freedom of translation on which Matthew (though countenanced by the Septua-- gint) could not fairly have ventured, had he intended any thing more than mere rhetorical accommodation. Had he designed the argument commonly attributed to him, the maiden condition of Mary was its main circumstance ; this is an idea which the original He- brew does not convey, whoever was the young woman that it spoke of; and accordingly Matthew would have been producing an argument, the very basis of which was a mistranslation of the passage quoted. I do not forget the probability that Matthew wrote in Hebrew, that is, the vernacular Hebrew of his day, and that his Gospel, as we have it, is a translation ; and I have framed my statements above accordingly. But whether Matthew's original preserved the exact sense of Isaiah's word (riD?i?)j hi which case the variation contained in the Greek version (irapOevos) is due to his trans- lator, or whether (as is in my view more probable) Matthew, intending only rhetorical accommodation, himself used a word corresponding to the Septuagint version, to make that accommodation more exact, in either case my argument is substantially the same. That is, either Matthew himself translated the He- brew word accurately, and then he could not pretend that there was any remarkable correspondence between the language of the passage and the circumstances of I. 22, 23.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 25 the birth of Jesus ; or he translated it inaccurately, which he might do with perfect propriety, if only rhe- torical embellishment was intended, but which he could not fairly do for the sake of producing an argument such as the original did not justify, and which, even if unfairly disposed, he could not have attempted to any purpose, through a misrepresentation of the meaning of so common a word. These considerations go to show that the common view of Matthew's purpose in using the words, " All this was done that it might be fulfilled," &c, is unten- able. I now proceed to explain and vindicate the interpretation which I think ought to be put upon them. " That it might be fulfilled " (tva irX^prndy). "What do these words mean in this connection % In its primitive sense, the verb (-rrXripow) here ren- dered I fulfil, signifies I fill, or I fill out. Such also is its common New Testament use (see, instar omnium., Matt. xiii. 48 ; Luke iii. 5 ; John xii. 3 ; xvi. 6 ; Acts ii. 2 ; v. 28 ; 2 Tim. i. 4). In such connections as that before us, it is impossible to maintain that, merely ex vi termini, the accomplishment of a supernatural prediction is intimated. The filling out, or fulfilling, or verification spoken of, is the same that we have in mind when we say, in the use of a scarcely different phraseology, The old saying was made good. It is of the same kind that the writer of the Second Epistle of Peter had in view, when he said (ii. 22), " It is hap- pened unto them according to the true proverb, ' The dog is turned to his own vomit again ' ; and, ' The sow that was washed, to her wallowing in the mire.' " In repeated instances in which the word fulfil is used in connection with a sentence quoted, it seems impossible to doubt whether they refute the idea that that word 3 ' 26 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 22, 23. must be taken to import the accomplishment of a su- pernatural prediction. (See, e. g. Matt. xiii. 14, 35 ; John xviii. 9 ; James ii. 23.) Matthew (viii. 16, 17) says persons diseased in mind and body were cured by Jesus, " that it might be fulfilled which was spoken by Esaias the prophet, saying, ' Himself took our in- firmities, and bare our sicknesses.' " But Peter (1 Pet. ii. 24) and the author of the Epistle to the Hebrews (ix. 28) make a very different application of Isaiah's words. Which was right, on the common hypothesis % Or — one understanding Isaiah to have meant one thing, and the others another thing — were they all right, agreeably to some theory of double senses of the prophetical writings \ Or, finally, were they all right (as I believe), because they were all making a mere accommodation of Isaiah's language to a different oc- casion from that in reference to which he had used it? "That it might be fulfilled." The other material word in the clause is the conjunction that (tW). Does not this indicate design ? Does it not necessarily denote that the events previously related took place in order to create a correspondence with the language of a writer of the eighth century before % I assume that in our Greek Gospel of Matthew the form of the sentence is correctly translated from Mat- thew's original, supposing that original to have been in the vernacular language of Palestine. It belongs to a class of expressions equivalent to each other, and which there is no nicety in translating. "Whether we say to fulfil (et? rb TrXrjpovv^ or that it might be fulfilled (cva, or otto)? 7r\7]pco0rj) , the sense of the expressions, and of a literal rendering of them into all languages, will be the same. To do a thing ; that a thing may be done ; — in the common and authorized use of all languages, do these I. 22, 23.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 27 forms of expression necessarily denote design] De- ploring the fate of my friend lost at sea, I say, " He left his country only to meet his fate," or " that he might meet his fate." Is there any thing extraordinary in this expression ; or will it cause any one to under- stand me as meaning that my friend left his country intending to rush on his death] Is there any danger that I shall be supposed to refer to a design enter- tained by him \ "Will not every one see that it is only the event that I have in view % So the Psalmist says (li. 4) : " Against thee, thee only, have I sinned, and done this evil in thy sight, that thou mightest be justi- fied when thou speakest," &c. So Jeremiah (xxvii. 15) represents Jehovah as speaking: " They prophesy a lie in my name, that I might drive you out, and that ye might perish." So the disciples in their question to Jesus (John ix. 2) : " Master, who did sin, this man, or his parents, that he was [rather, that he should be~\ born blind 1 " So Paul (Rom. i. 20) : " The invisible things of him from the creation of the world are clearly seen, so that they are [rather, that they may he~\ without excuse." So John (1 John ii. 19): "They went out from us that they might be made mani- fest that they were not ail of us." In such cases, taken from Scripture, though the form of expression belongs alike to all writings and languages, who dreams that the phraseology is intended to indicate design ? Who does not see that the result is what is referred to % (For other Scriptural examples, if desired, see Exod. xi. 9; xvii. 3; Numb, xxxii. 14; Jer. vii. 18; Amos ii. 7; Matt, xxiii. 33, 34; xxvi. 12.) Accordingly, that is, or should be, a familiar princi- ple of interpretation which is laid down by Glass where he makes a distinction between the " that indicating the design " (the cva antoXoyacov), and the " that indi- 28 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 22, 23. eating the result " (the r lva Ik$cltikov), and says (" Phi- lologia Sacra," Lib. I. Tract. VII. Canon 19), "The causal conjunction (f^p 1 ?, wa, ut), and the equivalent expressions, do not always denote the final cause of a thing, but frequently the event." From ' this brief philological analysis, let us now pass to the usas loquendi, the practice of writers, which is the surest criterion of the meaning of words and combinations of words ; and, by a few examples from other sources, enable ourselves to judge what is the received and authorized force of such expressions as that in question. ^Eiian (" Hist. Var.," Lib. III. cap. 29) says that Dioge- nes the Cynic used to say, " that he fulfilled (eWx^ot) and endured in himself all the curses of tragedy, for he was a vagabond," &c. Olympiodorus, in his Life of Plato, applying to him a line of Homer, says : " The bees came and filled his mouth with honey-comb, that it might be true of him, that ' song sweeter than honey flowed from his tongue.' " Cicero in his Oration for Publius Sextius (§ 57), referring to some lines, which, when recited, had been thought by the audience to be applicable to himself, says : " Of me the elegant poet wrote." Again, in his Oration for Cneius Plancius (§ 24), he quotes two lines which he says were ad- dressed to his sons by " a poet of eminence and talent," and then proceeds, " which lines their author wrote not to stimulate those royal youth to toil and honor, but to stimulate us and our children." Jerome (" Epist. 103 ad Paulin.") uses this language: "In us is that Socratic saying fulfilled, ' This little I know, that I know nothing.' " (" Opp.," Tom. IV. Pars II. p. 574, ed. Martianay.) Commenting on the clause, " and babes shall rule over them" (Is. iii. 4), he applies it to the leaders of the Jews in his own day, and says that I. 22, 23.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 29 in them " the prophecy is fulfilled." (" Opp.," Tom. III. p. 36.) And again, on the words, "The child shall behave himself proudly against the ancient, and the base against the honorable " (Is. iii. 5), he says (" Opp.," Tom. III. p. 37) that when this takes place, " that apostolic saying will be fulfilled, ' They shall bite one another, and be devoured by one another.' ' (Comp. Gal. v. 15.) Plutarch, quoting a line in which Homer describes Agamemnon, says (" De Fortun. Alexand.," Tom. VII. p. 310, edit. Tteisk.) that " Homer, in the same verse, set forth the greatness of Agamem- non, and uttered a prophecy of Alexander " (fxe/jLavrev- tcll). Epiphanius (" Opp.," Tom. I. p. 125, edit. Petav.) says that " in Ebion is fulfilled what is written, « I was almost in all evil.' " (Comp. Prov. v. 14.) Eusebius (" Hist. Eccles.," Lib. II. cap. 1), referring to the con- version of the Ethiopian officer by Philip (comp. Acts viii. 27-32), says : " So that the prophecy obtained its fulfilment in him, ' Ethiopia stretcheth forth her hands to God.' " (Comp. Ps. lxviii. 31.) Again (Ibid., cap. 23), in a passage quoted from Hegesippus, relating to the martyrdom of James the Just : " They fulfilled that which is written in Isaiah (Is. iii. 11), 'Let us take away the just, because he is a reproach to us, for they shall eat the fruit of their doings.' " In a letter from the churches of Lyons and Vienne to those of Asia, preserved by the same writer (Ibid., Lib. V. cap. 1), after a relation of some persecutions experienced by the former churches, it is said, " Then was fulfilled the declaration of our Lord, ' The day will come, when every one that slayeth you will think that he doth God service.' " (Comp. John xvi. 2.) And again (Ibid.) : " The madness both of the governor and of the people, as of some savage beast, blazed forth so much the more, to show the same wicked hatred to 3* 30 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 22, 23, us, that the Scriptures might be fulfilled, c He that is unjust, let him be unjust still, and he that is righteous, let him be righteous still.' " (Comp. Apoc, xxii. 11.) A few specimens from the Syriac may be thought to have a peculiar weight, from the fact that the Syriac language was all but the same as that which was the vernacular tongue of Matthew and John. That is to say, the Syriac and Chaldee languages, though written in a different character, have the closest resemblance in other respects, — in grammar, vocabulary, and idiom ; and the language spoken in Palestine in the time of Jesus and his Apostles was a dialect between the two, called thence by scholars the Syro- Chaldee, and in the New Testament sometimes named the Hebrew. (John v. 2 ; Acts xxi. 40 ; comp. " Lectures," &c., Vol. I. p. 4, note.) It was this dialect which Matthew and John used as their native tongue, and it was in this Hebrew, probably, that Matthew composed his Gospel, if the early statements of his having written in He- brew are to be received. In an anonymous life of St. Ephrem the Syrian, written in Syriac, (Asseman. " Biblioth. Orient.," Tom. I. p. 35,) an angel is represented as charging him : " Take heed lest that Scripture be fulfilled in thee, 4 Ephraim is as an heifer that is taught and loveth to tread out the corn,'" &c. (Comp. Hosea x. 11, and observe the important resemblance between this case and Matt. ii. 23, in respect to the paronomasia of the name.) In a more full life of that father, also in Syriac, prefixed to the collection of his works extant in that language, we find the following : " In him was fulfilled the word which was spoken concerning Paul to Ananias (Acts ix. 15), ' He is a chosen vessel unto me.' " (Sanct. Ephrem, "Opp. Syriace et Latine," Tom. 1.22,23.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 31 III. p. xxiv.*) Again, in the same work (Tom. III. p. xlviii.), it is related that St. Basil said of him : " This is he of whom Christ in the Gospel speaks, ' I came to cast fire upon the earth.' " (Comp. Luke xii. 49.) Ephrem himself, the oldest of the writers in the Syriac language, whose works are extant, says of Aristotle ("Opp.," Tom. II. pp. 317, 318): "He exactly fulfilled that which was written concerning Solomon the wise, that ' of those who were before or after, there has not been his equal in wisdom.' " (Comp. 1 Kings iii. 12.) Again, he says (Ibid., Tom. II. p. 513, Serm. xxxiii. " Advers. Hseres.") : " Infatuated men hate and reject what is good for them, as it is written, ' The Lord awoke, like one who slept.' " (Comp. Ps. lxxviii. 65.) The following sentence (Ibid., Tom. III. p. xxv.) pre- sents an example of reference to words not found in Scripture, illustrating in a peculiar way the freedom and inexactness with which such allusions were made : " The love and peace of Christ began to be diffused in the hearts of clergy and of believers, agreeably to what the Lord says in the Gospel, ' Blessed is that servant, by whom the name of his Lord shall be glorified.' " Let us glance at the Jewish writers, though what we have been speaking of belongs to a habit, not of the Jewish, or the Oriental, but of the human mind, and iElian, Cicero, Plutarch, Eusebius, and Jerome might serve us sufficiently, without reference to Syriac or Hebrew authorities. In the Book of Tobit, we read (ii. 5 - 7) : "I re- turned, and washed myself, and ate my meat in heavi- ness, remembering that prophecy of Amos, as he said * The reader must be careful to observe that the collection of St. Ephrem's works, in six volumes, is divided into two parts, of three volumes each ; Greek and Latin, and Syriac and Latin. The reference here is to the sixth volume of the series, but the third of the Syriac portion. 32 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 22,23. (comp. Amos viii. 10), ' Your feasts shall be turned into mourning, and all your mirth into lamentation' ; therefore I wept." In the First Book of the Macca- bees (vii. 16, 17) it is said of one of the Syrian gen- erals: " He took threescore men, and slew them in one day, according to the words which he wrote (comp. Ps. lxxix. 2, 3), ' The flesh of thy saints have they cast out, and their blood have they shed round about Jerusalem, and there was none to bury them.' " In the book Berachoth (" Talmud. Babylon.," edit. Marin., Tom. I. fol. 57, foot of p. £*) it is said that a certain Mar, on entering Babylon, took up earth, and threw it beyond the Babylonish border, to fulfil that which is said,' " I will sweep it with the besom of destruc- tion." (Comp. Is. xiv. 23.) Again: "Abai said that a stormy wind does not last more than two hours, to fulfil what is said (Nahum i. 9), ' Affliction shall not rise up the second time.' " (" Talmud. Babylon.," Tom. I. fol. 59, p. 1, a little below the middle.*) In the book Kiddushin (" Mischna Surenhus.," Tom. III. p. 367) we read: "Whosoever is versed in Scripture, in the Mischna, and in the ways of the world, will not speedily sin, as it is said, 4 A threefold cord is not easily broken.'" (Comp. Eccles. iv. 12.) Again (" Mischna Surenhus.," II. 266) : " Rabbi Eleazar said, 'Whosoever has not eaten on the night of the first day of the feast, should do it on the night of the last day of the feast. But the wise men say, there is no compensation in the matter ; of this it is said, ' That which is crooked can- not be made straight, and that which is wanting can- * I am thus particular in these references, to save the reader, who may wish to refer to the passages quoted, the trouble which. I have had of finding them without aid, in solid folio pages of the Talmudical dialect, without index, version, or typographical facility of any kind. He may find yet others of the same sort cited in Surenhusius , s BiftXos KaraXXayr]s, par- ticularly under Theses IT. and III. of the First Book. II. 3-6.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 33 not be numbered.' " (Comp. Eccles. i. 15.) Again (" Mischna Surenhus.," II. 374) : " What shall I do to thee, who enjoyest thyself before the face of God, who does to thee according to thy wish 1 Thou art like a son rejoicing before his father, and doing to him ac- cording to his wish. Of thee the Scripture saith (comp. Prov. xxiii. 25), * Thy father and thy mother shall be glad, and she that bare thee shall rejoice.' ' These are but a few out of numerous examples of this form of expression which occur in the JViischna. I have not access to a copy of the Jerusalem Talmud. In an extract from it in Schaaf's " Opus Aramseum" (" Selec- ta Targum," &c, pp. 372, 373) is the following sen- tence : " When Rabbi Amun came befpre the king, he turned his head ; some came desiring to kill him, but they saw two fiery sparks proceeding from his neck, and let him go, to fulfil that which is said (comp. Deut. xxviii. 10), ' And all the nations of the earth shall see that thou art called by the name of the Lord, and they shall be afraid of thee.' " The result to which I would lead the reader by these remarks is, that Matthew, in the quotation which he introduces from Isaiah, merely meant to say, in the use of a customary device of rhetoric, that words, used by that ancient writer in an entirely dif- ferent application, might be adopted as applicable to those circumstances of the birth of Jesus which he, Matthew, was now describing. II. 3-6. When Herod the king had gathered all the chief priests and scribes of the people together, he demanded of them where Christ should be born. And they said unto him, "In Bethlehem of Judea ; for thus it is written by the prophet, ' And thou, Bethlehem, in the land of Juda, art not the least among the princes of Juda, for out of thee shall come a governor, that shall rule my people Israel.' " 34 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [II. 3-6. The words here quoted are from the prophet Micah (v. 2). It is not the Evangelist Matthew who ap- plies them to the circumstances of the Messiah's birth. He relates that the application was made by " the chief priests and scribes of the people," without intimating what he himself thought of its correctness. A strictly literal translation of the words, as they stand in the original Hebrew, is as follows : — " And [or, but] thou, Bethlehem Ephratah, little to be among the thousands of Judah ; from thee shall go forth to me to be a ruler in Israel." Which Dr. Noyes in his version correctly expresses thus : — " But thou, Bethlehem Ephratah, Who art too small to be among the thousands of Judah, Out of thee shall come forth for me a ruler of Israel." The quotations in Matthew's Gospel, as in the other New Testament books, are generally from the Septua- gint version. But the Septuagint reading of this pas- sage literally follows the Hebrew, except that for " Bethlehem Ephratah " it has Bethlehem, house of Ephratah ; so that the New Testament quotation dif- fers equally from both. Perhaps the reference in the original (see " Lec- tures," &c, Vol. III. p. 283) was not at all to the place of the Messiah's birth, but to that of the origin of his family, made so illustrious in the person of David and of his royal descendants. Such is a natural signification of the verb rendered shall come forth (N¥!), when used in this connection ; and in what fol- lows ( u whose origin is from the ancient age, from the days of old "), the word rendered " whose origin," or ivhose going forth (VJWlfto), is from the same root. (Comp. Gen. xvii. 6.) David, the founder of the royal family of Judah, was born at Bethlehem (1 Sam. xvi. 1 ), II. 3 - 6.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 35 which was otherwise named in ancient times Ephrath (Gen. xxxv. 19), and was thus distinguished from another Bethlehem in the territory of Zebulun (Josh. xix. 15). Possessed, in common with all of his nation and time, with the idea that a royal descendant of David was to restore empire and greatness to Judah ("Lectures," &c, Vol. II. pp. 377-379, IV. 276- 281), and cherishing that hope the more fondly on account of the calamitous circumstances under which he wrote, Micah gave form to his glad anticipations in the passage of which the words before us make a part. He said that from the stock of royalty planted ages ago in Bethlehem Ephratah, there should spring a hero, who should cause his people to " dwell in se- curity " from the Assyrian oppressors, and by his seven or eight generals " devour the land of Assyria with the sword, the land of Nimrod within her gates." (Mic. v. 2-6, et seq.; "Lectures," &c., Vol. III. pp. 278-280, 282, 283.) But whether this was the whole force of Micah's language, or whether (as I think, on the whole, more probable) he supposed that David's birthplace would be also that of his great descendant, it appears that, among the punctilious and puerile interpretations of their ancient writers which prevailed among the Jews in the time of our Lord, and which he so often re- buked, this was one, — that Micah's language authori- tatively pointed out Bethlehem as the place which was to be honored by the personal " going forth " from it (in some sense) of the Messiah. We learn this from another text, in which the Evangelist John, recording a conversation which took place thirty years after that related by Matthew, writes as follows : " Many of the people said, ' Of a truth this is the prophet ' ; others said, ' This is the Christ ' ; but some said, ' Shall 36 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [II. 3- G. Christ come out of Galilee? hath not the Scripture said, that Christ cometh of the seed of David, and out of the town of Bethlehem, where David was % ' " (John vii. 40-42.) Upon this I remark, in the first place, — That it does not clearly show that the persons here described as referring to Micah's words understood them as meaning, by the Messiah's " coming out of the town of Bethlehem," his birth at that place. It does not appear that inquiry had been made about his birth- place. If that had been the question, and the truth had been told, the objection would have been done away. What they knew was, that he had " come out of Galilee," when he appeared at Jerusalem, and as- sumed to be a public teacher; and this is what they seem to have considered as the inconsistency with Micah's description. They may have thought that his public manifestation was due, and that the prophet had declared it to be due, to that place where his great ancestor, the founder of his house, had received the royal unction from Samuel (1 Samuel xvi. 1, 13); that from that place he ought to issue when he came to Jerusalem to take possession of his throne. Now, supposing this to have been really the meaning of Micah's words (which I by no means think it was), then Jesus did not fulfil them ; his birth at Bethlehem was nothing to the purpose, for his childhood and manhood had been passed in Galilee, and when he came to Jerusalem, he came from that province. Sup- posing that those who used the words erroneously thought that this was their sense, then the birth. of Jesus at Bethlehem was no sign to them, and the prophet's language, even if really intended to desig- nate the Messiah's birthplace, had been too equivocal to be appealed to in the way of proof. II. 3-6] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 37 But, though I have thought proper to suggest this view, I now waive it altogether, and, in what I am further to say, I proceed on the supposition that the persons whom John describes as referring to Micah's words had the same idea of their sense as " the chief priests and scribes," according to Matthew, had com- municated, thirty years before, to Herod. Now an in- terpretation, and an opinion founded upon it, so diffused among the people, and so permanent, that they lived through generation to generation, were of course known to Joseph and Mary. In process of time, it also be- came known to them that Mary was to be the mother of him who was to " save his people from their sins." Under such circumstances, what were they to do ? Bethlehem was sixty or seventy miles from Nazareth, the place of their residence. (Luke ii. 4.) Does any one imagine that, if, like their countrymen, they be- lieved (however erroneously) ancient prophecy to have declared that Bethlehem would be the Messiah's birth- place, she who knew herself to be the destined mother of the Messiah would remain at sixty or seventy miles' distance from Bethlehem, to await his birth at Naza- reth, and refute the prediction % Of course, she would go to Bethlehem in anticipation of that event, and thus the erroneous interpretation of language of an ancient writer, as containing a supernatural oracle, would bring about an event corresponding to that lan- guage in the mistaken sense which had been put upon it. (See « Lectures," &c, Vol. III. p. 337.) But were not Joseph and Mary better critics of the Old Testament than their countrymen and neighbors ? I see no reason to imagine it. But suppose they were, what then ] Suppose that, while " the chief priests and scribes " were informing the king that Micah had announced Bethlehem as the Messiah's birthplace, and 4 38 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [II. 3-6. while such was the opinion that everywhere prevailed, Joseph and Mary had read Micah's prophecy with better judgment, and put a truer construction upon his words. What should they do then ] Were they causelessly and wilfully to outrage the common opin- ion, and erect an obstacle to the reception of the future ^ claims of Jesus at the very outset 1 Luke says (ii. 3, 4) that, to be enrolled, — to give his name to the census, — Joseph had to go to Bethlehem, " because he was of the house and lineage of David." But he was to go thither only for the transaction of a business which would be very briefly despatched. It was not necessary that he should make any stay at Bethlehem for that purpose. It was a place within six miles of Jerusalem, to which he might immediately have returned when his interview with the enrolling officer was over, and his duty in respect to the census done ; and it was a small suburb, perhaps with only one inn (Luke ii. 7), and such as could not have accommodated, so much as for a single night, any considerable portion of those who were of " the house and lineage of David," And though Luke says that it was necessary for Joseph to repair to Bethlehem, and gives the reason, he does not say or imply that it was necessary for Mary to accom- pany him. He was there to give an account of him- self and his family, which he could do alone as fully, as credibly, and as responsibly as if he brought them with him. It would be preposterous to suppose that, either for the reason of any convenience in taking the census (an operation expensive enough without any such useless addition), or by force of any arbitrary rule, whole families, through the whole circuit of a nation, men, women, and children, old and young, sick and healthy, were obliged to make journeys from their homes to the respective places where their ancestors had settled on the first partition of the lands. II. 3-6.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 39 But Mary desired that, since her son was to be the Messiah, he should be born at Bethlehem, because such was the expectation of the people, and, whether she shared in their view of Micah's words or not, it was not fit that she should interpose any obstacle to the success of her son's future pretensions, by giving birth to him in some other place. Her husband had oc- casion to go to Bethlehem, to make his report there to an enrolling officer, agreeably to the imperial decree. It is probable that he might have chosen his time out of many weeks, or even out of several months ; for the taking of a census was a long process. (Prideaux's "Connection," Part II. Book IX. pp. 505-507, edit. 1718.) It is probable that, had no other object than that of his enrolment been in contemplation, he would have made his short residence at the capital city, fi\e or six miles off, instead of at the poor village of Bethlehem. But the time when the birth of Mary's son approached was the time that was chosen, in order that she too might make the journey, and that Bethlehem might be his birthplace, agreeably to the common expectation of the Messiah. Let any one who supposes that the birth of Jesus at Bethlehem was divinely designed as a token of the Messiah, and was accordingly predicted as such many centuries beforehand, consider how unsuitable such an event would have been to such a use. How many children of inhabitants of Bethlehem were born there from age to age ; and how easy would it have been for any Jewish mother to gain for her child the advantage of a false claim to be the Messiah, through a true claim to be a person in whose favor the prediction had been fulfilled ! I began my comments on this text by remarking on two particulars of the want of precision in Micah's 40 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [II. 14, 15. language, which rendered it unsuitable to yield satis- faction as to the correspondence of an event with it. I will suggest yet another. From Herod's course in putting to death all the children of Bethlehem under two years old (Matt. ii. 16), it may be inferred that his advisers, " the chief priests and scribes of the people," understood Micah to have meant that the Messiah's parents would be residents, and not chance sojourners, in Bethlehem. But if so, the fact did not correspond with their interpretation of Micah's words. II. 14, 15. When he arose, he took the young child and his mother by night, and departed into Egypt, and was there until the death of Herod, that it might be fulfilled which was spoken of the Lord by the prophet, saying, " Out of Egypt have I called my son." The reference is to the prophecy of Hosea (xi. 1), where we read as follows : " When Israel was a child, then I loved him, and called my son out of Egypt." The words are part of a discourse which, by the rhetorical device so common with the prophets (" Lectures," &c, Vol. II. pp. 415 -417), and not uncommon with other writers, Jehovah is represented as uttering. It is therefore with strict propriety that the Evangelist quotes them as " spoken of the Lord by [or in] the prophet." It is perfectly evident that by the original words Hosea intended no prediction whatever. The Septua- gint text reads, " Oat of Egypt have I called his [Is- rael's] children." But that is immaterial. Whether Jehovah's son or Israel's children, nothing can be clearer than that it is the Jewish people that is here signified (comp. Ex. iv. 22, 23), and that its past conduct and fortunes, and not any future events, are the subject of II. 14, 15.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 41 the passage. In the infancy of the nation, Jehovah, through his love for them, led them out of Egypt by the ministry of Moses. (Hos. xi. 1.) They strayed into idolatrous practices (ibid. 2), yet he did not re- nounce them, but dealt forbearingly and tenderly with them (ibid. 4) ; and so on. There is not a word here which it is possible to understand as spoken by Hosea of the future Messiah, in any sense. Whatever we may think of Matthew's capacity and authority as an interpreter of the Old Testament, — whether we as- cribe to him infallible knowledge, or only the most limited knowledge compatible with the smallest degree of common sense, — it is impossible to imagine that he could understand Hosea as speaking here of the future Messiah. So clear is this case, that I consider the text as hav- ing the highest importance in its bearing on the gen- eral argument respecting the force of quotations from the Old Testament in the New. If Matthew, calling to mind a passage of Hosea, in which, in terms so plain that Matthew could not misunderstand them, the exodus of the people was referred to historically, could quote the words in reference to an event seven or eight hundred years subsequent to the quoted writer, then it is as certain as any thing of the kind can be, that Matthew did not intend to represent that event as accomplishing a prediction contained in those words. And if, in such a case as this, when the supposition of prediction accomplished is absolutely preposterous and out of the question, the Evangelist could introduce his quotation with the formal words, " that it might be fulfilled which was spoken of the Lord by the prophet," then it follows, that in no case whatever does the for- mality of that introduction permit us to infer that the Evangelist points to the words which he quotes as 4# 42 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [II. 16-18. containing a prediction, of which events have brought about the accomplishment. Matthew simply suggests, in reference to the return of Jesus in his childhood from Egypt to Palestine, that God, in accomplishing the second great deliver- ance for his people, may be said to have done what the prophet had said he did in accomplishing the first ; that is, to have called his son out of Egypt. And this is the nature of quotations of this kind, of which such a great mystery and perplexity has been made. II. 16-18. Then Herod sent forth, and slew all the children that were in Bethlehem Then was fulfilled that which was spoken by Jeremy the prophet, saying, " In Rama was there a voice heard, lamentation, and weeping, and great mourn- ing, Rachel weeping for her children, and would not be com- forted, because they are not." The quotation is from Jeremiah (xxxi. 15 ; comp. " Lectures," &c., Vol. III. p. 362). In the passage of which it makes part, Jeremiah is referring to the deso- lation of the northern kingdom. Of that kingdom, Ephraim, of which Rachel was the ancestress (Gen. xlvi. 19, 20), was the chief tribe, and Ramah was one of its cities (1 Sam. i. 1). Accordingly, the poet, in the genuine spirit and style of his art, represents Ra- chel as weeping among the ruins of Eamah, and re- fusing consolation because her children were not there. Six hundred years after this, another slaughter takes place. It is true it takes place, not in Ramah, but in Bethlehem ; and Rachel has no concern with it, be- cause Bethlehem is in Judah, and that tribe is de- scended, not from her, but from her sister Leah (Gen. xxxv. 23). There was no occasion for weeping in Ramah, when the children of Bethlehem were put to II. 23.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 43 death. There would have been no propriety in repre- senting Rachel as bereaved on that occasion, for the children of Bethlehem were no children of hers. And her lamentation described by the ancient prophet was on account of a state of things existing in his own time, and not of an event contemplated by him as future. All this Matthew knew and understood, quite as well as we. And it is impossible that he should have intended to say that there was a prediction of Jeremiah, where every intelligent reader sees that there was none ; that there was a prediction of weeping in Ramah of Ephraim, which was fulfilled by a weep- ing in Bethlehem of Judah ; and that a prediction of Rachel's sorrow for her children was fulfilled in the death of children who were not of her blood. — We have to trifle very absurdly with words, in the attempt to prove that Matthew trifled with them, if possible, more absurdly still. If we will dismiss such idle and unauthorized refinements, and bring to his Gospel the good sense which we should not refuse to any other book but the Bible, we shall see that the language simply expresses the plain and pertinent meaning ; — the sharp and comfortless distress of bereaved mothers at Bethlehem, at this time, might be well described in language used anciently by Jeremiah when he was speaking of the desolation of Ram ah and Ephraim. II. 23. He came and dwelt in a city called Nazareth, that it might be fulfilled which was spoken by the prophets, " He shall be called a Nazarene." Here we get new light, from a different side, on the force, or rather the wo-force, (that is, of any such kind as has been commonly ascribed to it,) of this very for- mal manner of quotation. Nowhere in the Old Testa- 44 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [II. 23. ment can we find the words said by Matthew to be " spoken by [or in] the prophets, ' He shall be called a Nazarene.' " What then did he refer to % I have very little doubt that it was to a text in the Book of Judges (xiii. 5), where it is said of Samson that " he shall be a Nazarite." It is true that Matthew's word (NaCppaLos) is not the same as that (va#p) by which the Hebrew (*W3) is rendered in the Vatican copy of the Septuagint. But in the Alexandrian copy (Judges xiii. 5), in the Vatican copy (Lam. iv. 7), and in Josephus (" Antiq. Jud.," Lib. IV. cap. iv. § 4), we find Greek forms of the same word (ya&pcuot, and va&ipaioi) all but identical with that of Matthew, and therefore it may be presumed that this latter form was in quite as familiar use as the former. Again, let us apply to this case the probable opin- ion that Matthew wrote in his vernacular tongue. Whether we call it Hebrew or Syro-Chaldee (see above, p. 30) is immaterial ; it bore a close resemblance to the Syriac. If he meant, as I have supposed, to refer to Judges (xiii. 5), he would adopt the Hebrew word (Tf-5) with as little alteration as the structure of the dialect in which he was writing would permit. Now in the Syriac version of his Gospel we find an an- swering word, which I express as nearly as it can be in Hebrew letters, since where I print we have no Syriac types (NHjJ). This form, or something close- ly resembling it, it is likely that Matthew, in his origi- nal, used as the rendering of the word (Tf3) in Judges (xiii. 5). And of this form, when in the translator's hands it came to be transferred to the Greek of our present Gospel, the word (Na&paios) which we find, would be an easy and natural expression. Matthew says that he is making a quotation ; " that it might be fulfilled which was spoken by [or in] the II. 23.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 45 prophets, ' He shall be called a Nazarene.' " Except that which I have suggested, I know no account of his quotation which has the smallest probability. But supposing this account to be correct, it throws impor- tant light on the purport of this large class of quota- tions made from the Old Testament in the New. They are not assertions of prediction fulfilled. They are easy and natural rhetorical embellishments, — adapta- tions, accommodations, applications (of a kind recog- nized by all nations, and in almost all sorts of compo- sition), of expressions in common use, or expressions of some well-known writer, to some original sentiment, some passing event, or some habit or opinion which attracts notice. Between Samson, " a Nazarite unto God from the womb," and Jesus, whose mother " came and dwelt in a city called Nazareth," there was no actual, real resemblance because of those facts, — nothing, certainly, that made the residence of Jesus at Nazareth a literal fulfilment of any prediction that had been uttered respecting Samson's ascetic habits. But an ambiguous word (JVaf« palo?) signified either a Nazarite, which Samson was, or a Nazarene, which Jesus was ; and Matthew, struck with the ambiguity, takes occasion from it, by a sort of conceit (I must use that word, for want of a more dignified one, to convey the idea), to apply, to the latter, words used by an Old Testament writer concerning the former. Could he have anticipated what a race of critics would arise in after times, and what would be the cost of his indul- gences, in this way, of a writer's natural taste, it may be presumed that he would have scrupulously ab- stained from its gratification, 46 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [III. 1, 2. III. 1,2. In those days came John the Baptist, preaching in the wilder- ness of Judea, and saying, " Repent ye, for the kingdom of heaven is at hand." When John the Baptist spoke of the " kingdom of heaven," he evidently used a form of words not new to those whom he was addressing. It is plain that it was of something which they were expecting that he spoke, when he told them that it was near at hand. The " kingdom of heaven," the " kingdom of God " (Matt. vi. 33), and the " kingdom of the Son of man" (xiii. 41), are equivalent expressions. In my work on the Old Testament (e. g. " Lectures," &c, Vol. II. pp. 377 - 384 ; IV. 276 - 279), I have explained repeatedly and at length the nature and the origin of the concep- tions which those phrases were intended to convey. God designed in good time to follow and supersede the institutions of Moses with a religious dispensation more complete ; and accordingly the lawgiver was au- thorized to announce to his people, " The Lord thy God will raise up unto thee a prophet from the midst of thee, of thy brethren, like unto me." (Deut. xviii. 15.) It was also recorded in traditions preserved by Moses, that Abraham had received promises from Je- hovah of a royal issue from his stock. (Gen. xvii. 6, 16 ; xxxv. 11 ; comp. xii. 3 ; xviii. 18 ; xxii. 18 ; xxvi. 4 ; xxviii. 14.) As early as the institution of the monarchy, — as early, at all events, as the time of David, — these two ideas came to be combined ; and a royal prophet, or propagator of divine truth, — a hero of irresistible martial prowess, of venerable wisdom, of splendid talents for administration, and of burning zeal for the Law, — became the hope of the nation. Under his conduct, their country should rise to a height of unprecedented glory. " Kings should see III. 1, 2.] GOSPEL OE MATTHEW. 47 them and stand up, yea, princes, and do them homage " ; and all the glories so emulously described in the books of the Psalms, the prophets, and others, were to clus- ter around Jerusalem and Zion. The Messiah (equiv- alent to the Christ in Greek and the Anointed in Eng- lish) became the special name of the fancied sovereign, and the phrases " the kingdom of heaven " and " the kingdom of God " designated the Jewish empire which was to be established. So, for instance, Micah (iv. 7) spoke of it while the first Jewish kingdom yet stood : " I will make the halting a remnant, and the far-scat- tered a strong nation." And the author of the Book of Daniel (ii. 44), after it had fallen : " In the days of those kings shall the God of heaven set up a kingdom which shall never be destroyed ; and the kingdom shall be left to no other people ; but it shall break in pieces and consume all these kingdoms, and it shall stand for ever " ; and again (vii. 13, 14) : " I saw in the night visions, and behold, one like a son of man came with the clouds of heaven, and came to the aged per- son, and they brought him near before him ; and there was given him dominion, and glory, and a kingdom, that all people, nations, and languages should serve him ; his dominion is an everlasting dominion, which shall not pass away, and his kingdom shall not be destroyed." (Comp. Dan. vii. 27.) Such were the anticipation and the hope transmitted from generation to generation of the Jews, and which prevailed among them at the time when Jesus appeared. Such was the expectation of the " kingdom of heaven " or " kingdom of God," cherished at that time with even more interest than at some others, because of the depression to which the nation was then reduced. And when " in those days came John the Baptist, preaching in the wilderness of Judea, and saying, 48 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [III. 3. ' Repent ye, for the kingdom of heaven is at hand,' " such as has been described was, without doubt, the new state of things, the establishment of which he was understood by his hearers to announce. That he himself had any more correct idea of the nature of the revolution about to take place, there is no reason whatever to suppose. He calls on his countrymen to repent, or reform, by way of preparation for a share in the benefits of the coming kingdom, because, according to the established opinion, the " Redeemer who was to come to Zion " was to " turn away ungodliness from Jacob," and establish a society free from all injustice, dissension, and offence. (Is. xi. 1-13; lix. 20; lx. 21 ; Ezek. xx. 43 ; Mai. iv. 1 - 6.) III. 3. This is he that was spoken of by the prophet Esaias, saying, " The voice of one crying in the wilderness, 4 Prepare ye the way of the Lord, make his paths straight.' " The words quoted are taken from the book of Isaiah (xl. 3), with one slight variation from the Septuagint text, and two from the Hebrew. The original writer, in the time of Cyrus, encouraging himself that the time is close at hand for his countrymen to be released from their captivity at Babylon and restored to their home, expresses his exulting hope under the image of hearing a voice command the construction of a straight and level road through the intervening wilderness, for the people, marshalled by their guardian God, to travel back and repossess their ancient domain. (" Lectures," &c., Vol. III. pp. 237 - 239.) In point of fact, this language, and the occasion to which it relates, have nothing to do with the appearance of our Lord's her- ald, John the Baptist, " in the wilderness of Judea." But the words applied by the ancient writer to the III. 3.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 49 one case admitted of an easy and graceful application to the other ; and that application, in the use of a common device of rhetoric, Matthew makes. " This is he that was spoken of by the prophet Esai- as." Is there any thing in that phrase to refute the above explanation 1 Suppose we were recommending a candidate for office, should we have any hesitation in saying, " You have often heard descriptions of the man needed for this place ; here is the very man so described " 1 Yet literally it was not true that the description had been drawn from that man ; the de- scription had been made independently of him, and afterwards he was observed to correspond with it. In the Epistle of Jude (14) we find these words : " Enoch also, the seventh from Adam, prophesied of these, say- ing, ' Behold, the Lord cometh with ten thousand of his saints, to execute judgment upon all, and to con- vince all that are ungodly among them of all their ungodly deeds,' " &c. Who understands the writer as meaning that his own contemporaries were the per- sons whom the antediluvian Enoch (or whoever had assumed his name) had in view, when he uttered these words of warning'? Who does not naturally and in- stinctively perceive the sense to be, that the sinners of the writer's time might be aptly rebuked in words which he quotes as Enoch's, anciently used on a dif- ferent occasion, and respecting different persons ] (See above, pp. 28-31.) " This is he that was spoken of by the prophet Esaias." Has this language any material bearing on the ques- tion whether Isaiah was the author of the fortieth chapter of the book which goes by his name % On the contrary, it is our custom to refer to a composition by its common title, whatever may be our opinion of the correctness of that title. We speak of " the poem& 5 50 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [III. 17. of Ossian," instead of using so inconvenient a periph- rasis as " the poems of Macpherson, pretended by him to have been written by an ancient bard, named Ossian." A scholar quotes a fable " of iEsop," and an ode " of Anacreon," while he is satisfied in his own mind that they are pieces which did not proceed from the writers so named. (See, on this subject, " Lec- tures," &c, Vol. III. pp. 180, 181, 235, 236.) III. 17. And, lo, a voice from heaven, saying, " This is my beloved son, in whom I am well pleased." This text presents the important question of the sense in which the title " Son of God " is given to Jesus in the New Testament. The origin and explanation of the title are to be found in an idiom of the Old Testament ; and that is the circumstance which brings it within the scope of our present investigation. A common form of speech among the Jews was, to call by the name of son of any person or thing, whatever was connected with that person or thing, whatever resembled it, or resulted from it Thus a "son of Belial" (1 Sam. ii. 12) is a bad man ; a " son of a murderer" (2 Kings vi. 32) is a san- guinary person ; " son of perdition " (John xvii. 12), one that deserves perdition ; " son of man " (Ps. viii. 4), a human being ; " son of peace " (Luke x. 6), a peaceable individual ; " sons of flame " (Job v. 7), sparks; "son of the morning" (Is. xiv. 12), Lucifer, or the morning star. In like manner those who re- semble God, or are regarded as acting with his au- thority, or otherwise signalized by his favor, are called his sons. God is represented as saying to David con- cerning Solomon (2 Sam. vii. 14), " I will be his fa- ther, and he shall be my son"; and again (1 Chron. III. 17.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 51 xxviii. 6), " Solomon shall build my house and my courts, for I have chosen him to be my son." " Thus saith the Lord," said Moses to Pharaoh (Exod. iv. 22, 23), " Israel is my son, even my first-born ; and I say unto thee, let my son go, that he may serve me." "When Israel was a child," Hosea (xi. 1) represents Jehovah as saying, " then I loved him, and called my son out of Egypt." The conception and phraseology in question appear equally in the New Testament. Paul writes to the Galatians (iii. 26), " Ye are all the children of God by faith in Christ Jesus " ; to the Corinthians (2 Cor. vi. 17, 18), " ' I will receive you, and be a father to you, and ye shall be my sons and daugh- ters,' saith the Lord Almighty " ; to the Romans (viii. 14), " As many as are led by the spirit of God, they are the sons of God." St. John writes (1 John iii. 1, 2), " Behold what manner of love the Father hath bestowed upon us, that we should be called the sons of God ; beloved, now are we the sons of God." Such being the settled use to which the Jews put the title, they would of course apply it, by eminence, to their expected Messiah. Favored of God above all others, he especially would be entitled to be called God's son. If the name was suitable to rulers, then especially to him to whom were to be given " domin- ion and glory, and a kingdom, that all people, nations, and languages should serve him." If it was descrip- tive of righteous men, and of men efficient in ac- complishing God's purposes, then eminently of that " righteous servant " of God who " by his knowledge " was to "justify many." Thus it was, — it could not have been otherwise, — that, at the time of the appearance of Jesus, among the names commonly applied to the expected deliverer, (as " King of Israel," expressive of his office, as that 52 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [III. 17. was understood, " Son of David," indicative of his de- scent, and " Messiah," or Christ, denoting the form of induction to the royal dignity,) was that of " Son of God," implying the divine favor extended and the di- vine authority delegated to him. These titles, and others, were used as signifying the same office, — the same person, — and were used indifferently. Thus John the Baptist, " looking upon Jesus as he walked, saith, ' Behold the Lamb of God.' " (John i. 36.) " Andrew, who heard this, said to his brother Si- mon, 'We have found the MessiasJ " (Ibid. 41.) Phil- ip, their neighbor, " findeth Nathanael, and saith unto him, ' We have found him of whom Moses in the Law and the prophets did write.' " (Ibid. 45.) And Na- thanael, in his turn, on coming to Jesus, said, " Rabbi, thou art the Son of God, thou art the King of Israel." (Ibid. 49.) In short, the several titles, though taking their different forms from the respective aspects in which the expected hero was viewed, were, in their application, equivalent. The demoniacs whom Jesus cured at Capernaum cried out, " saying, ' Thou art Christ, the Son of God.' " (Luke iv. 41.) The council who examined him before he was carried before Pilate, asked him, "Art thou the Christ?" (Luke xxii. 67.) And when they repeated the question, it was in the words, " Art thou then the Son of God ? " (Ibid. 70.) By Matthew (xvi. 16) near Cesarea Philippi, Peter is related to have said to Jesus, " Thou art the Christ, the son of the living God " ; and the profession was of that extreme importance, that it is difficult to sup- pose that either Evangelist would have omitted either of the two phrases, if he had recognized any difference in their meaning. Yet by Mark (viii. 29) we find Peter only related to have said, " Thou art the Christ" and by Luke (ix. 20) , " The Christ of God " ; and III. 17.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 53 after Peter's declaration our Lord is recorded (Matt, xvi. 20) to have " charged his disciples that they should tell no man that he, Jesus, was the Christ" which was not all nor the chief of what he would have forbidden them to disclose, if there had been a separate meaning in the phrase Son of God. " Is it not written in your Law," said Jesus (John x. 34-36), " ' I said, Ye are gods V If he called them gods unto whom the word of God came (and the Scripture can- not be broken), say ye of him whom the Father hath sanctified and sent into the world, ' Thou blasphemest,' because I said, ' I am the Son of God ' ? " His being sanctified and sent into the world by God, — in other words, his being the Christ, the legate of God, — is the reason he himself assigns for calling himself God's son ; and this, in an express and formal justification of the propriety of his assumption of the title. If the reasoning above is correct, then no mystical conception of the metaphysical nature of Jesus was intended to be expressed in the Scripture phrase, Son of God. In whatever is peculiar of its application to him, it is simply a title of office, equivalent to, and interchangeable with, the title of Messiah. The " voice from heaven," which, after his baptism by John, hailed him as God's well pleasing and " beloved son," was neither more nor less than a recognition of him in the character of that great reformer and deliverer, whom (with whatever degree of misapprehension of his true office) the chosen people had been expecting from age to age, on the authority of their great law- giver's promise (Deut. xviii. 15), that " a prophet would the Lord their God raise up unto them of their breth- ren, like unto himself." 5* 54 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [IV. 13-16. IV. 13-16. Leaving Nazareth, he came and dwelt in Capernaum, which is upon the sea-coast, in the borders of Zabulon and Nephtha- lim ; that it might be fulfilled which was spoken by Esaias the prophet, saying, "The land of Zabulon, and the land of Nephthalim, by the way of the sea, beyond Jordan, Galilee of the Gentiles, the people which sat in darkness, saw great light, and to them which sat in the region and shadow of death, light is sprung up." In the book of Isaiah (ix. 1, 2) we read, according to the Hebrew : * "Of old he brought the land of Zebulon and the land of Naphtali into contempt. In future times shall he bring the land of the sea be- yond Jordan, the circle of the Gentiles, into honor. The people that walk in darkness behold a great light ; they who dwell in the land of death-like shade, upon them a light shineth." Of the Septuagint Greek a literal translation is as follows, viz. : " Make haste the land of Zebulon, the land of Nephthalim, and other inhabitants of the sea-coast, and Galilee of the Gentiles beyond the Jor- dan. Thou people that walkest in darkness, behold a great light ; ye who dwell in a region [which is] a shadow of death, light shall shine upon you." •)• * That is, if we change the division between the eighth and ninth chap-" ters, which in the Hebrew occurs at the beginning of the last period of the passage quoted, so that the ninth chapter begins " The people," &c. If we regard the Hebrew division, of course the discrepance between the origi- nal and Matthew's quotation is greatly increased. f The text stands thus in the Chaldee : "Formerly Zebulun and Naph- tali emigrated, and those of them who remained shall be led by a mighty king into captivity, because they did not remember the power which was manifested at the Red Sea, and the miracles at Jordan, and the war of the cities of the nations. The people of the house of Israel, which walked in Egypt as in darkness, came forth to see a great light ; upon those who dwelt in the land of the shadow of death, light has arisen." The Syriac varies the reading materially, in a still different way. In such an un- certainty of the text, "it is impossible to frame that argument from supernatu- ral prediction, of which an ascertained text must be the basis. IV. 13-16.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 55 It is plain that Matthew has followed neither the one nor the other. It is plain that he has merely availed himself of a portion of the words and the general structure of the sentences, as no writer could think of doing if he meant to point to a supernatural prediction accomplished. If, in such a case as this, the quotation could be introduced by the words, " He came and dwelt in Capernaum, &c, that it might be fulfilled" &c, how is it possible in any case to argue that the essential force of that expression requires the reader to understand it as indicating a prediction brought to pass % In the original connection of the passage, as I in- terpret it (see " Lectures," &c, Vol. III. pp. 195, 196), Isaiah had expressed the sense that the disasters ex- perienced by the northern tribes from the Assyrian inroad would not be permanent, but that the victories of the expected Son of David would restore to them freedom and prosperity. Isaiah had, it is true, referred to the Messiah, but to the Messiah very erroneously un- derstood ; nor can his words be construed as contain- ing any allusion to a residence of the Messiah in the territory of Zebulon and Naphtali. Matthew, too, knew much more familiarly than we, that to dwell at Capernaum would not be the fulfilment of a predic- tion of dwelling " beyond Jordan," inasmuch as Ca- pernaum was not on the side of the river denoted by the use of those words. He had no idea of represent- ing the residence of Jesus at Capernaum as the accom- plishment of a prediction. He had no idea that Isaiah had predicted a residence of the Messiah at that or at any other place. Isaiah had spoken of an illumina- tion of the northern territory by the dawn of a politi- cal deliverance. Matthew takes part of his words, and applies them to the appearance, in that country, of a light of very different nature. 56 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [IV. 17. IV. 17. From that time Jesus began to preach, and to say, " Repent, for the kingdom of heaven is at hand." The ideas associated by the Jews with this expres- sion were, as we have seen (above, pp. 46 - 48), quite erroneous. " They expected a new Jewish empire to be established on a more stable and glorious footing than the old. It was to be established and administered under heavenly protection by the Son of David, the Messiah. He was to be a valiant, politic, and mag- nificent prince, successful in his wars, and exalting his subjects to a temporal supremacy over the nations. The humble Jesus of Nazareth was no such prince. His office was to establish no such dominion. His was to be not a worldly, but a spiritual sway. Yet, because he came to set up a kingdom, a kingdom under heavenly protection, the only kingdom which was to be looked for, and the very authority which had been pointed at by Moses in words which later ages had misunderstood, he did not hesitate to begin his ministry with the declaration, ' The kingdom of heaven is at hand,' and to repeat the same and similar language through its whole course. 4 The kingdom of heaven ' was at hand, though in a sense different from what had been understood, and in one which it remained for him to explain." (" Lectures," &c, Vol. II. p. 383.) V. 2-10. And he opened his mouth, and taught them, saying, " Blessed are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom of heaven. Blessed are they which are persecuted for righteous- ness'' sake, for theirs is the kingdom of heaven." Here we have the first recorded attempt of Jesus to disabuse his Jewish hearers of the errors which, V. 2-10.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 57 through false habits of thought, they had derived from their Scriptures. Here he begins to explain to them that there was to be no such " kingdom of heaven " as they had been looking for, but that Heaven was about to establish a dominion over men, and a society among men, of a very different kind. The people, from whom Jesus had now collected an audience, were anxiously expecting, like their fathers before them, a " kingdom of heaven." They were right in their expectation of such a dominion, but they greatly misconceived its nature. The ancient sages of their nation, - — Isaiah, Jeremiah, Haggai, and the rest, — adopting, from age to age, the notions of their time, had greatly misconceived it. Jesus had an- nounced its approach to delighted ears (iv. 17, 23). Now he first proceeds to explain in what it would consist. It was to be an empire over the human soul. It would collect, form, and rule over a community of humble, meek, merciful men, men pure in heart, stu- dious of peace, schooled by trial, hungering and thirst- ing for goodness. Let us endeavor to place ourselves in the midst of that assembly to which Jesus made his first long address. How must the heart of every Jew have swelled with pride and hope to hear the announce- ment, that that great revolution was near which he expected would make Jerusalem the seat of a splendid empire, — the Son of David, the conqueror, the glory and delight of all nations, — and the meanest Israelite an object of the trembling veneration of subdued and humbled Gentiles ! How greedily must his selfishness have fed itself on the anticipation of a share in the authority and magnificence of the kingdom about to be established ! And, indignant as he was at the bur- dens, and still more at the insolence, of a Homan 58 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [V. 2-10. domination, how must he have exulted in the thought that the time, not only for his emancipation, but for his revenge, was close at hand ! When multitudes from all the districts of the Holy Land had collected about him who had uttered this long and anxiously expected summons, and drawn the eyes of all to him by wonderful works of power and mercy, and when, as if to take advantage of their enthusiasm, and place himself at their head, he was seen, surrounded by his special attendants, to go up into a mountain, and dis- pose himself into an attitude to address the crowd, with what an intensely excited expectation must every bosom have throbbed ! With what a painful curiosity must the first words he should utter have been awaited ! And what must have been the surprise and disappoint- ment which succeeded, when those first words were heard : " Blessed are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom of heaven " ! Yet, while giving such a shock to their fixed pre- possessions and ambitious hopes, — while revolting all their notions of a heavenly kingdom, drawn from the revered writings of " them of old time," — I think we may see that Jesus designed to break the force of the blow, by hinting that the view which he was present- ing was not without warrant from those same Old Testament Scriptures which it seemed to oppose. To this end, not a little of the phraseology employed by him on this occasion appears to have been framed. (For instances, comp. Matt. v. 3 with Ps. li. 17, Is. lxi. 1, lxvi. 2; Matt. v. 4 with Ps. cxxvi. 5, Pro v. xiv. 13, Eccles. ii. 2, iii. 4, Is. xxii. 12, 13, xxxv. 10, lvii. 10, 18, lxi. 2; Matt. v. 5 with Ps. xxxvii. 11, lxxvi. 9, cxlix. 4, Is. lvii. 13 ; Matt. v. 6 with Ps. xvii. 15, xxxvii. 25, xlii. 2, lxiii. 1, Is. lv. 1, lxv. 13 ; Matt. v. 7 with Ps. xxxvii. 25, 26, xli. 1, Pro v. V. 17.] GOSPEL OF MATTHEW. 59 xiv. 21, xix. 17; Matt. v. 8 with Ps. xxiv. 3, 4, lxxiii. 1, Is. xxxiii. 15, 16.) V. 17. Think not that I am come to destroy the Law or the prophets ; I am not come to destroy, but to fulfil. A caution very necessary, after what Jesus had been saying of the nature of that institution which was about to be set up in the world, so different from that military and magnificent " kingdom of heaven " which his hearers had been expecting. In every age, he who explains the Scriptures in their right sense, and ex- hibits them in their true position, exposes himself to the charge of aiming to " destroy," instead of to " ful- fil" them. Reasoning unskilfully upon the contents of their sacred books, the Jews appealed to them in support of very pernicious errors. When Jesus an- nounced great truths which contradicted those errors, he knew that in the minds of his hearers he incurred a suspicion, which he repelled in the words quoted above. He came, he said, not, as (from the freedom with which he had spoken) might be supposed, to de- ride, relax, or annul the ancient Scriptures, but, on the contrary, to fulfil, to complete, to carry out their object. The great object of their inspired lawgiver, Moses, had been, to introduce into the world right conceptions of the character and authority of God, and the principles of virtuous conduct. The object of those wise and good (if not supernaturally inspired) men, the prophets, had been, in their day and gen- eration, to serve the same great cause of truth and righteousness. His aim was identical with theirs. His mission was to accomplish their proposed object, far more effectually and thoroughly than they had succeeded in doing, or had so much as attempted to 60 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [V. 22. do (v. 18-20). He was not their opponent, but their more powerful co-worker, — their successor, rather, in a much higher sphere of the same labor, And, for present samples of the way in which it would be his office to "fulfil" the ancient teachers, by extending their narrow, and deepening their superficial discipline, he shows how his system of morality, in respect to the angry passions (ibid. 21-26), to the animal ap- petites (ibid. 27 - 30), to conjugal faith (ibid. 31, 32), to religious reverence (ibid. 33-37), and to the mag- nanimity of gentleness, the obligations of human brotherhood (ibid. 38-48, vii. 12), transcended and matured the best rules with which the devotees of the Law and the prophets were acquainted. It is obvious to remark, that, if Jesus had come to fulfil " the prophets " in the erroneous popular sense in which the Messiah was then, as now, expected to fulfil them, this was the time and place to declare it. V. 22. I say unto you, that whosoever is angry with his brother with- out a cause, shall be in danger of the judgment : and who- soever shall say to his brother, " Raca," shall be in danger of the council : but whosoever shall say, " Thou fool," shall be in danger of hell-fire. "Hell-fire ." Literally, the gehenna of fire, or the fiery gehe7ina. Gehenna ( vl<*>), and it is equally observable, whether we understand the sentence as has been done by our translators, or render it, " all things that are written by [or in] the prophets shall be accomplished in the Son of Man." The word out of which the misapprehension of the sentence arises, is that rendered " shall be accom- plished" (T€k€), I bring to an end. Founding themselves on an assurance given by their great lawgiver, the writers called Prophets had spoken largely of a future dispen- sation, which acquired the name of the kingdom of XVIII. 31-33.] GOSPEL OF LUKE. 157 God. It is true that they greatly misunderstood its nature, but still that kingdom of God, which they had intended to foreshadow, was established when Jesus of Nazareth, the Son of Man, introduced his religion among men. In that just and important sense, when Christianity was published, all things written by the prophets concerning the Son of Man were accom- plished (or wrought out to their end) ; or, all things written by the prophets were accomplished (or wrought out to their end) in the Son of Man. But how 1 By entirely unexpected methods. And Jesus, as the circumstances demanded, presents the truth in the form of what to his hearers was a para- dox. So far from coming into possession of his king- dom through splendid conquest, he was to arrive at it through an experience of suffering, and (as the world estimates such things) defeat and shame. The proph- ets had written of a future establishment of the domin- ion of the Son of Man. In a better sense than they un- derstood, his dominion was to be established. "What they had written concerning him was to be brought to pass. But it was to be brought to pass in a way of which they had not dreamed. The Messiah's kingdom was to be founded when he should have risen again after being treated with insult and cruelty, and put to death. With these remarks, I present the following para- phrase as bringing out the true sense of the passage : — " He took to himself the twelve Apostles, and said to them, Behold, we are now going up to Jerusalem, and there that kingdom of the Son of Man, spoken of by the ancient writers, is to be set up. It will be through an instrumentality expected neither by them nor by you. For the Son of Man will first be betrayed to Gentiles, who will treat him with indignity and 14 158 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XIX. 35. violence, and at length put him to death. But, not- withstanding all this, victorious over such reverses, three days only will pass before he will rise again, to establish himself in that office of which the great lawgiver wrote (Gen. xii. 3, xviii. 18, xxii. 18, xxvi. 4, xxviii. 14 ; Deut. xviii. 15), and to which the line of later sages constantly looked forward, though they so imperfectly understood its nature." XIX. 35. They cast their garments upon the colt, and they set Jesus thereon. See above, p. 99, and observe that neither Mark nor Luke refers, like Matthew, to the passage in Zech- ariah. XIX. 38. Blessed be the King that cometh in the name of the Lord ; peace in heaven, and glory in the highest. See above, pp. 101, 102. XIX. 46. It is written, " My house is the house of prayer" ; but ye have made it a den of thieves. See above, p. 102. XX. 17. What is this then that is written : " The stone which the build- ers rejected, the same is become the head of the corner" ? See above, p. 103. XX. 38. He is not a God of the dead, but of the living ; for all live unto him. To the account of the reasoning of Jesus on this XXI. 22.] GOSPEL OF LUKE. 159 occasion, as given by Matthew and Mark, Luke adds the clause, " for all live unto him." I would rather render the words, for all helonging to him live. So understood, they sustain the view which above (pp. 104- 106) I have presented of the passage as it stands in the other Evangelists. "All belonging to him live.'* That is, those whom he recognizes as his own, in the sense of being objects of his favor, he will not suffer to die. In the text of the Law referred to, he recog- nized Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob as his own, in the sense of being objects of his favor. It may be inferred, then, that he would not permit them to perish. XX. 42, 43. David himself saith, in the book of Psalms, " The Lord said unto my Lord, ' Sit thou on my right hand, till I make thine enemies thy footstool.' " See above, pp. 107- 109. XXL 22. These be the days of vengeance, that all things which are writ- ten may be fulfilled. " Written" where % In the book of God's decrees ; in the counsels of Divine Providence. (See above, pp. 117, 118, and comp. Ps. cxxxix. 16.) Or we may understand our Lord as referring to the threats uttered by Moses (Lev. xxvi. 14-39; Deut. xxviii. 15-68) of punishments to be incurred by the people, should they be rebellious and perverse, and declaring that a retribution, of even such severity as that, was what the people of his age had incurred, and were about to experience. 160 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XXI. 27. XXI. 27. Then shall they see the Son of Man coming in a cloud, with power and great glory. See above, pp. 112, 113. XXII. 30. That ye may eat and drink at my table in my kingdom ; and ye shall sit on thrones, judging the twelve tribes of Israel. See above, pp. 98, 99. XXII. 37. I say unto you, that this that is written must yet be accom- plished in me, " And he was reckoned among the trans- gressors." The quotation is from the pseudo-Isaiah (liii. 12). Of whomsoever the words might have been originally spoken, nothing could be more natural, or more con- formable to the established uses of language, than for our Lord to say that they were accomplished in him, when he was in circumstances which they correctly described. In point of fact, I think that by the origi- nal writer they were used in reference to the Messiah, though in a different sense from that in which the application is made of them by Jesus. See " Lec- tures," &c, Vol. III. pp. 252-259. XXII. 69. Hereafter shall the Son of Man sit on the right hand of the power of God. See above, pp. 121, 122. XXIII. 46. And when Jesus had cried with a loud voice, he said, "Father, into thy hands I commend my spirit." He expressed his emotion in language of the Psalm- ist (xxxi. 5 ; comp. Wisdom iii. 1). XXIV. 25-27.] GOSPEL OF LUKE. 161 XXIV. 25-27. He said unto them, " O fools, and slow of heart to believe all that the prophets have spoken ! Ought not Christ to have suf- fered these things, and to enter into his glory? " And begin- ning at Moses, and all the prophets, he expounded unto them in all the Scriptures the things concerning himself. In reading this text, I have often doubted whether we have the correct version of the first clause. The phraseology rendered by our translation " believe all " (iricTTeveiv eiri iraaiv), is a peculiar construction. The use of the preposition (eV/) after this verb (irio-Teveiv), and preceding a dative of the subject, occurs, I believe, in only three (or, in effect, two) other places in the New Testament (1 Tim. i. 16 ; Rom. ix. 33 ; comp. 1 Pet. ii. 6) ; and there in constructions much less harsh. It might, perhaps, admit a question, whether we ought not to render, " O fools, and slow of heart to believe (that is, in me), after all that the prophets have said ! " or, " O fools, and slow of heart, to believe (in me), upon (that is, founding your slow- ness to believe, your prejudices and objections, upon) the representations of the prophets ! " But, passing by this, " all that the prophets have spoken" is the representation of the prophets taken together, taken as a whole. The representation of the prophets (that is, of the teachers of old time) had included the idea that the Messiah should be a great deliverer ; and accepting that representation of the Messiah, and believing for a time that he had at length come in the person of " Jesus of Nazareth, which was a prophet mighty in deed and word before God and all the people" (xxiv. 19), the disciples had "trusted that it had been he which should have redeemed Israel." But events had come to pass which shook their faith. Contrary to what they expected, differ- 14* 162 NOTES" ON PASSAGES IN THE [XXIV. 25-27. ently from any thing they had been prepared for by the ancient sages who had written of the Messiah, Jesus had been betrayed, condemned, and crucified. They were amazed, perplexed, and desponding ; and Jesus rebukes them for being dull of understanding (under the pressure of this disappointment and dis- trust) to believe that he could be the person whom the disclosures in the Old Testament had in view. " Ought not " — was it unfit that the Christ should " enter into his glory " through a course of suffering, as Jesus had done I The disciples thought it was utterly unfit ; they found no such representation in their prophets, from whom their ideas had been drawn ; and because they had seen their Master a sufferer, they could not any longer see how he could be the Messiah. Jesus showed them that, on the contrary, it was fit. He did not show that it was fit in the sense of being a suitable fulfilment of ancient predictions declaring that the Messiah was to be a sufferer. This was not to be shown, for there were no such predictions. But he showed them that it was fit in itself, — fit as part of the plan of God's providence and grace, — and that, taking " all that the prophets had spoken" together, looking at their representation in its various stages, tracing their conception to its source, and making allowance for the causes of the erroneous views which they had associated with it, there was no reason why the fact of Jesus having been a sufferer should forbid his being acknowledged as God's anointed. And how did Jesus show this % Precisely in the way which would have been necessary, on the sup- position that my theory of the subject is true. " Be- ginning at Moses, and all the prophets, he expounded unto them in all the Scriptures the things concerning himself." From Moses' Law he showed how, in God's XXIV. 25-27.] GOSPEL OF LUKE. 163 original disclosure, through Moses, of the future com- ing of a " prophet like unto himself" (Deut. xviii. 15), the idea of a Messiah had its germ and standard. Then, from the series of later writers, he showed how that idea had been corrupted, and ideas of merely worldly pomp and conquest had been connected with it, until it had become irreconcilable in the minds of readers with the idea of one who should suffer and die. (See " Lectures," &c., Vol. II. p. 381 et seq. ; Vol. IV. p. 304 et seq.) By the authority which the disciples (in common with great part of their nation at this period) errone- ously attributed to the writers called by them the Later Prophets, the disciples were misled into such a conception of the Messiah as made them ready to give up their Master's pretensions to that character when they saw him suffer and die. Under this influence, they became slow of understanding to believe that Jesus could set up a kingdom. The account given by Luke of his Master's correction of their error, is extremely brief. But it accords entirely with what my views of the Old Testament lead me to believe to have been the truth of the case. They thought it was utterly unfit that the expected benefactor, on his way to his greatness, should be a sufferer. " He expounded unto them in all the things concerning himself." He showed how much, in ancient descriptions of the Mes- siah, was well founded, and how much was erroneous. " Beginning at Moses," he developed the idea of the Messiah as having been originally, according to God's own oracle, that of a " prophet," a teacher, the head of a moral empire ; an office with which the idea of a previous discipline of suffering was by no means in- consistent, but the contrary. And then, glancing at the later writers, he showed how that primitive con- 164 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XXIV. 44-47. ception had from age to age been corrupted in their hands, in a way to create those very prepossessions, unfavorable to an acknowledgment of the claims of Jesus, by which these simple disciples were now em- barrassed. XXIV. 44-47. And he said unto them, " These are the words which I spake unto you, while I was yet with you, that all things must be fulfilled which were written in the Law of Moses, and in the Prophets, and in the Psalms, concerning me." Then opened he their understanding, that they might understand the Scrip- tures, and said unto them, " Thus it is written, and thus it behooved Christ to suffer, and to rise from the dead the third day, and that repentance and remission of sins should be preached in his name among all nations, beginning at Je- rusalem." The sense of the first clause in the declaration of Jesus here recorded, is perhaps better brought out, in translating, by a little different collocation of the words, equally accordant with the original : " All things which were written in the Law, &c. must be fulfilled con- cerning me" ; — that is, concerning me and no one else; I, and I alone, am the Messiah to whom they pointed. Moses, by supernatural instruction, and therefore, of course, with exact correctness, had spoken of a " proph- et like unto himself." Jesus was that prophet, and so the words of Moses were fulfilled in him. The writers who came after Moses, the Prophets and Psalmists, without supernatural instruction, and therefore with liability to human error, had had the same personage in view in what they had written, however they had deviated from a correct description of him. Whatever, therefore, they had written concerning the Messiah, was to have its completion in Jesus, and in no other XXIV. 44-47.] GOSPEL OF LUKE. 165 person. To him, authorized or mistaken, exact or in- exact, it all related. Its subject and aim was his as- sumption of a divinely bestowed office. Its mistakes were mistakes respecting the nature of that office. " These are the words," he says, " which I spake unto you while I was yet with you." This is what he had in effect told them, when he declared himself to be the Christ. This was difficult for them to believe, for in the Scrip- tures which they reverenced there were parts which they could not at all reconcile with the idea of a suf- fering Messiah. " Then opened he their understanding, that they might understand the Scriptures," discerning the different degrees of authority belonging to those writings, their relations to each other, and so the just inferences to be deduced from the whole. " And said unto them, < Thus it is written, and thus it behooved Christ to suffer,' " &c. " It behoved " ($>e*), it was fit ; the same word which is used in the question (xxiv. 26) " Ought not Christ to have suffered these things % " &c. The asserted fitness by no means arose out of what had been " written in the Prophets and in the Psalms," but out of the nature of things, and of the office of a moral reformer which Jesus was to fulfil. (Comp. Luke ix. 22.) The sufferings of Christ were fit, notwith- standing what was there written. " Thus," on the one hand, says Jesus, " it is written," by the Prophets and Psalmists, " yet thus," on the other hand, it was and is fit, for the fulfilment of God's high purposes, that the Christ should suffer and die (xxiv. 46). When allowance was made for the errors of the Prophets and Psalmists, and when, from those errors, their concep- tion was traced back to its primitive source, it would appear that, notwithstanding their representations, there was no unfitness in the Messiah's sufferings. 166 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 21. " That repentance and remission of sins should be preached in his name among all nations," was a view of the main purpose of his commission as foreign from the popular conception of it, as that he should be a sufferer. SECTION IV. GOSPEL OE JOHN. I. 21. They asked him, " What then ? Art thou Elias ? " And he saith, " I am not." " Art thou that prophet ? " And he an- swered, " No." See above, pp. 85, 86. I. 23. He said, " I am the voice of one crying in the wilderness, 1 Make straight the way of the Lord,' as said the prophet Esaias." See above, pp. 48-50, 144. What is further to be remarked here, however, is, that John the Baptist says that he is " the voice," &c. ; and that, instead of the word corresponding to " prepare," which is used by the Septuagint translators and by the other Evange- lists, John has " make straight." It is plain that the Baptist, or the Evangelist who records his saying, was not studious of exactness in the quotation. I. 34. I saw and bare record, that this is the Son of God. See above, pp. 50-53. I. 51.] GOSPEL OF JOHN. 167 I. 36-49. Looking upon Jesus as he walked, he saith, " Behold the Lamb of God ! " Nathanael answered and saith unto him, " Rabbi, thou art the Son of God ; thou art the King of Is- rael." This passage illustrates the meaning of the phrase Son of God, showing it to be, as I have argued, equiva- lent to Messiah. John declares Jesus to be the Lamb of God (i. 36). One of his two disciples, who hear him, says to his brother, " We have found the Messias, which is, being interpreted, the Christ" (41). — Again, Philip says to Nathanael, " "We have found him of whom Moses in the Law, and the prophets did write " (45) ; and Nathanael, being convinced, in an interview with Jesus, of the correctness of Philip's opinion, ex- presses his conviction in the avowal, " Rabbi, thou art the Son of God ; thou art the King of Israel " (49). " Rabbi," means Doctor, or Teacher. " Son of God," in my opinion, is equivalent to Messiah ; and this being so, there is no hardness in the collocation. But others think that it means God the Son, one of the persons of the Divine Trinity, the infinite Majesty of heaven and earth. How will the sentence read on that sup- position \ " Teacher, thou art ." I cannot ven- ture to make the substitution. I. 51. Hereafter ye shall see heaven open, and the angels of God as- cending and descending upon the Son of Man. See above, pp. 65 - 68. I think there is here an al- lusion to the passage in Genesis (xxviii. 12), where it is related that Jacob saw " the angels of God ascend- ing and descending," in his dream at Bethel ; and our Lord's sense, conveyed in this figurative language, is, You shall see that I have direct intercourse with heaven. (Comp. Ps. xxxiv. 7, xci. 11, 12.) 168 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [II. 17. II. 17. His disciples remembered that it was written, " The zeal of thy house eateth me up." It is so written by one of the writers of the Psalms (lxix. 9). But that writer is clearly speaking of him- self, without any reference to Jesus, or to any other person. And he uses the words respecting himself in an application entirely different from that which the disciples make of them to their Master. The words employed by the Psalmist in reference to himself in one sense, are susceptible of being referred to Jesus in another sense. And in this latter the disciples adopt them. " His disciples remembered that it was written" ; or, as we might phrase it, They were forcibly reminded of that expression. (Comp. xii. 16.) II. 18-22. Then answered the Jews, and said unto him, " What sign show- est thou unto us, seeing that thou doest these things ? " Jesus answered and said unto them, " Destroy this temple, and in three days I will raise it up." But he spake of the temple of his body. When, therefore, he was risen from the dead, his disciples remembered that he had said this ; and they believed the Scripture, and the word which Jesus had said. See above, p. 79. In order to rise from the dead, Jesus must first die. But before his death and resurrection actually took place, his disciples had found it impossi- ble to reconcile their conception of the Messiah, as they had derived it from the Scriptures, with that of his being removed by a violent death (Matthew xvi. 22 ; Mark ix. 32 ; Luke ix. 45, xviii. 34). They could not, at the same time, " believe the Scripture, and the word which Jesus had said." But "when he was risen from the dead," their minds were more enlightened. "They believed the word which Jesus had said," III. 14,15.] GOSPEL OF JOHN. 169 because now the fact had illustriously confirmed it. And, with the new light which had broken on their minds respecting his character and office, now also "they believed the Scripture." They looked at the Scripture through a different medium from what they had heretofore done. They applied to it truer methods of interpretation. Those representations of the Mes- siah which had forbidden them to conceive of him as a sufferer, they now saw to be representations made by uninspired men. The radical Scriptural idea of the Messiah they traced to Moses's conception of him as " a prophet," a teacher, and holding to this, and using it as the key to what was said by the later writers, of inferior authority, they were able at once to " be- lieve the Scripture, ^,nd the word which Jesus had said." See above, pp. 161 - 166. III. 14, 15. As Moses lifted up the serpent in the wilderness, even so must the Son of Man be lifted up ; that whosoever believeth in him should not perish, but have eternal life. Clearly a figurative illustration, drawn from the ac- count in the Book of Numbers (xxi. 6-9) of the cure effected through the instrumentality of the " fiery serpent " made by Moses. As by the lifting up of the serpent men's bodies were cured, so men's souls will be by the lifting up of the Son of Man. As in the former case men did not perish, but had life, so in the latter case they will have better, even " eternal life." Of the same description is the comparison of the res- urrection of Jesus (Matthew xii. 40) to the reappear- ance of Jonah, as related in the book which bears his name. 15 170 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [IV. 5. IV. 5. Then cometh he to a city of Samaria, which is called Sychar, near to the parcel of ground which Jacob gave to his son Joseph. See Josh. xx. 7, xxiv. 32 ; Judg. ix. 7 ; also, Gen- esis xlix. 22 - 26 ; and comp. " Lectures," &c., Vol. II. pp. 113, 114, 119, 120. IV. 20. Our fathers worshipped in this mountain. See "Lectures," &c, Vol. I. p. 492, note. IV. 25. The woman saith unto him, " I know that Messias cometh (which is called Christ) ; when he*is come, he will tell us all things." From this text (with which comp. iv. 29, 39 - 42) it would appear that the Samaritans, who did not pos- sess the writings of the Prophets, but only the Law (see "Lectures," &c, Vol. I. p. 73, Vol. II. p. 138), retained better than the Jews the primitive idea of the Messiah as a teacher (Deut. xviii. 15). V. 39, 40. Search the Scriptures ; for in them ye think ye have eternal life ; and they are they which testify of me ; and ye will not come to me, that ye might have life. There existed in our Saviour's time, among the Jews, an expectation of an " eternal life " after death. (See Matt. xxii. 23 et seq. ; Luke xiv. 14 ; John xi. 24 ; Acts xxiii. 8.) Whencesoever derived, and however shaped by communications with their Babylonian, Persian, and Greek masters, it was not a doctrine taught in their ancient Scriptures. They, however, with whom Jesus was now conversing, erroneously supposed that VI. 30,31.] GOSPEL OF JOHN. 171 it was so taught. I understand him as saying to them, You imagine that in your Scriptures you have dis- closures of a life to come, and therefore you do not need me to make it known. But examine them, and see whether it is so. They no further reveal that doc- trine, than as they speak of me, who am appointed to bring it to light ; of me, to whom you are unwilling to listen. — Why should he have bid them search the Scriptures for that doctrine, if the opinion already confidently entertained by them, that it was taught in those writings, was well founded 1 V. 46, 47. Had ye believed Moses, ye would have believed me ; for he wrote of me. But if ye believe not his writings, how shall ye be- lieve my words ? If ye are not moved by his writings, whom ye pro- fess so to reverence, how can it be expected that ye will be by my words, whom you professedly contemn ] — " He wrote of me " ; the particular reference, I suppose, is constantly to the promise by Moses of a "prophet like unto himself" (Deut. xviii. 15). VI. 14, 15. Those men, when they had seen the miracle that Jesus did, said, " This is of a truth that Prophet that should come into the world." When Jesus, therefore, perceived that they would come and take him by force, to make him a king, &c. The text bears witness to the popular confusion of ideas between the " prophet " predicted by Moses, and a secular " king." VI. 30, 31. They said therefore unto him, " What sign showest thou, then, that we may see and believe thee ? What dost thou work ? Our fathers did eat manna in the desert, as it is written, 4 He gave them bread from heaven to eat.' " 172 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [VI. 45. The quotation is from a Psalm (lxxviii. 24). When the Jews asked, as they often did, for " a sign," and " a sign from heaven," as the proper authentication of the mission of Jesus (see above, pp. 79, 85, 131), they seem to have had in view such Old Testament relations as those of the sending of manna, and of the descent of flame upon Mount Sinai (Exod. xix. 18 ; comp. John vi. 49, 58), upon the sacrifice of Elijah (1 Kings xviii. 38), and upon the soldiers sent to appre- hend him (2 Kings i. 10, 12), according to their in- terpretation of those narratives. — The miracle which Jesus had just performed in feeding the multitudes (John vi. 11), bore a resemblance to the provision of manna, but not in the particular, supposed to have be- longed to that phenomenon, of a shower from the sky. The Jews seem to invite Jesus, if he intends an imi- tation of the act of Moses, to make it complete. VI. 45. It is written in the Prophets, " And they shall be all taught of God." By the pseudo-Isaiah, describing that glory and fe- licity which he anticipated for his countrymen returned from their exile, it was said (liv. 13 ; comp. " Lectures," &c, Yol. III. pp. 259, 260), " And all thy children shall be taught of the Lord." This language, says Jesus, may well be applied to the present state of things. God is now teaching you by me ; and, as he continues in the same verse, " Every man that hath heard, and hath learned of the Father, cometh unto VII. 37, 38. Jesus stood and cried, saying, " If any man thirst, let him come unto me, and drink ; he that believeth on me, as the Scrip- ture hath said, ' Out of his belly shall flow rivers of living water.' " VIII. 17.] GOSPEL OF JOHN. 173 In " the Scripture " we find such language as this : " With joy shall ye draw water out of the wells of salvation " (Is. xii. 3) ; "I will pour water upon him that is thirsty, and floods upon the dry ground " (Is. xliv. 3) ; " Thou shalt be like a watered garden, and like a spring of water, whose waters fail not" (Is. lviii. 11). These texts bear a very faint resemblance to those expressions of our Lord which he compared with what " the Scripture hath said." Yet none, I believe, have been or can be pointed out as more likely to have been had in view by him. Such an instance shows plainly that the expression, " as the Scripture hath said," and such like, will not bear to be strictly interpreted, and that it is out of the question to con- sider them as indicating a reference to a supernatural prediction fulfilled. VII. 40-42,52. Many of the people, therefore, when they heard this saying, said, " Of a truth this is the Prophet." Others said, "This is the Christ." But some said, " Shall Christ come out of Galilee ? Hath not the Scripture said, that Christ Com- eth of the seed of David, and out of the town of Bethlehem, where David was ? " " Search and look : for out of Galilee ariseth no prophet." See above, pp. 35, 171. These prejudiced persons perhaps made rather too broad a generalization, when they said that from Galilee had arisen " no prophet." Of the ancient prophets, it is likely that Nahum, at least, was a native of that province. (Comp. " Lec- tures," &c, Vol. III. p. 285.) VIII. 17. It is also written in your law, " The testimony of two men is true." 15* 174 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [VIII. 56. " At the mouth of two witnesses, or at the mouth of three witnesses, shall the matter be established." (Deut. xix. 15.) VIII. 56. Your father Abraham rejoiced to see my day ; and he saw it, and was glad. The vision of the Messiah's day, which, indistinct as it was, reasonably caused Abraham to rejoice, was that related to have been disclosed on Mount Moriah (Gen. xxii. 18; comp. xii. 3). X. 22. And it was at Jerusalem the Feast of the Dedication, and it was winter. See " Lectures," &c, Vol. IV. p. 144. X. 34, 35. Jesus answered them, " Is it not written in your Law, ' I said, Ye are gods ' ? and the Scripture cannot be broken." The words quoted by our Lord as the basis of his argument occur in a Psalm (Ixxxii. 6). — " The Scrip- ture cannot be broken " ; that is, " There is no blot- ting those words out of Scripture." XL 27. I believe that thou art the Christ, the Son of God, which should come into the world. I would translate, " he who is to come into the world," each of the three clauses containing, in my view, one of the equivalent titles of the Messiah. See above, pp. 50-53, 70,171. XI. 49-52. And one of them, named Caiaphas, being the high-priest that XL 49-52.] GOSPEL OF JOHN. 175 same year, said unto them, " Ye know nothing at all, nor consider that it is expedient for us, that one man should die for the people, and that the whole nation perish not." And this spake he not of himself: but being high-priest that year, he prophesied that Jesus should die for that nation ; and not for that nation only, but that also he should gather together in one the children of God that were scattered abroad. Caiaphas had said nothing (50) of any effect of the death of Jesus to " gather together in one the chil- dren of God that were scattered abroad." We must accordingly translate John's words, with equal literal- ness, " Being high-priest that year [or, high-priest as he was that year], he spoke prophetically ; for \otC\ Jesus was [in fact] to die for that nation [as Caiaphas, using those words in a different sense, had said], and not for that nation only [was he to die], but also [which Caiaphas had not said] that he might gather together in one the children of God that were scattered abroad " [that is, among the Gentile nations]. But in what sense is it meant that Caiaphas, " high- priest as he was that year, spoke prophetically " % It is difficult to imagine that John intended to affirm Caiaphas to have been endowed by God with the su- pernatural power of predicting the future, and that too respecting an office of Jesus which even the dis- ciples of Jesus did not yet understand. Nor was it any part of the high-priest's function under the Law to foretell coming events. (See " Lectures," &c., Vol. I. pp. 211, 212.) It is simply the same vivid language — but language never misunderstood, in common dis- course — which we use, when, remarking on some striking coincidence (whether actual, or merely fanci- ful or verbal) between something which has occurred and something which had previously been said, we say, " The man did not speak of himself ; uncon- sciously to himself, he foretold the future " ; — " He 176 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XL 49-52. uttered prophetic words, so that one might imagine him inspired " ; — " The event marked his utterance for providential, so exactly was it fulfilled." (Comp. Tit. i. 12, 13.) This is one of the cases in which examples are more satisfactory than analysis and discussion. Shakespeare says : — " Every flower Did, as a prophet, weep what it foresaw, In Hector's wrath." And again : — "Jesters often prove prophets." Dryden says : — " He loved so fast, As if he feared each day would be her last ; Too true a prophet to foresee the fate, That should so soon divide their happy state." Is it objected that these examples are from poets % A speech is under my eye, in which the following lan- guage is used : " When I found the Senate of the United States throwing themselves into the breach,, that body, which Martin Van Buren, in 1828, in a spirit of prophecy, foretold to be the only obsta- cle to Executive encroachments," &c. A newspaper paragraph, which just now falls in my way, speak- ing of the Rev. Dr. Stillman's sermon for the Boston Female Asylum, says, that when he agreed to perform that service, " he declared that he doubted not that an institution founded on the benevolent affections, would, like the snow-ball, accumulate in its progress, and be- come of extensive utility." And the writer adds : " This ivas prophecy, — and it has been fulfilled." These persons did not mean to declare that Dr. Stillman and President Van Buren had literally supernatural pre- science. Nor did John mean to pronounce the same XII. 14-16.] GOSPEL OF JOHN. 177 thing of the high-priest Caiaphas. It would be use- less to multiply illustrations of this sort. Everybody uses such expressions freely, and no one using them doubts of being understood. See above, pp. 29, 73. XII. 13. Hosanna ! Blessed is the King of Israel, that cometh in the name of the Lord ! See above, pp. 101, 102, XII. 14-16. Jesus, when he had found a young ass, sat thereon ; as it is writ- ten, " Fear not, daughter of Sion ; behold, thy King cometh, sitting on an ass's colt." These things understood not his disciples at the first ; but when Jesus was glorified, then re- membered they that these things were written of him, and that they had done these things unto him." See above, pp. 99-101. John's quotation from Zechariah is very inexact, even more so than that of Matthew ; and this in a case where, if the Evangelists had designed to point out a fulfilment of supernatural prediction, a precise citation of the words was all-im- portant. — " These things understood not his disciples" ; this literal accordance of a transaction in the last days of Jesus with certain language used in another sense by an ancient writer, in a poetical representation of the Messiah, was not contemplated, perceived, or attended to by the disciples of Jesus at the time ; but after- wards, " when Jesus was glorified," the coincidence was remarked, as having a sort of curiosity and inter- est ; and it was the more striking, as the disciples, when they made the arrangement, had nothing of the kind in view. " Then remembered they that these things were written of him [that is, of the Messiah], and that they had done these things unto him [that is, 178 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XII. 34. to Jesus, who was the Messiah]." And Matthew and John, in their histories, call the attention of their read- ers to that coincidence. (Comp. ii. 17.) But Mark (xi. 7) and Luke (xix. 35), though they relate the occurrence at length, have not thought it worth while to notice any resemblance borne by it to language of Zechariah, as it would seem that they could scarcely have failed to do, had they regarded it in the singularly important light of the accomplishment of a prediction made six or seven centuries before. XII. 34. The people answered him, " We have heard out of the Law, that Christ abideth for ever ; and how sayest thou, ' The Son of Man must be lifted up ' ? " " The Law " is used for the Scripture, in the same loose sense as in a text just remarked upon (x. 34). Not Moses, but ancient writers who had succeeded him, had used language which it was not unnatural to interpret as indicating their belief that the Messiah would be immortal (Ps. Ixxxix. 36, 37, ex. 4 ; Is. ix. 7). And such in fact has been the construction put upon that language by more recent Jewish writers. (See Bertholdt, « Christol. Jud." § 28.) This text is a clear confirmation of the argument maintained above (see pp. 65 - 68), that the titles Christ and Son of Man were subject to be used as equivalent and convertible. XII. 37, 38. Though he had done so many miracles before them, yet they believed not on him ; that the saying of Esaias the prophet might be fulfilled, which he spake, " Lord, who hath believed our report, and to whom hath the arm of the Lord been re- vealed ? " The words quoted are from the pseudo-Isaiah (liii. XII. 39-41.] GOSPEL OF JOHN. 179 1). It is perfectly plain that in them the writer is not predicting the incredulity with which the declarations of the Messiah would be listened to, but is complain- ing of the incredulity which would attend what he himself says concerning the person described in the following passage. By orthodox commentators that person is understood to be the Messiah, supernaturally foreknown by Isaiah. I also think that the writer is speaking of the Messiah, though without any super- natural foreknowledge. (" Lectures," &c, Vol. III. pp. 256-259.) But whoever understands the Messiah to be the subject of the passage must needs regard the introductory words, quoted by John, as the writer's remark on the reluctant reception, by his own contem- poraries, of what he was about to say, and not as any prediction of the aversion which would attend the teaching of any future person. It would seem that nothing could be clearer than this. And yet, if it be so, there is an end of the question respecting the in- ference supposed to be deducible from the emphatic form, " that the saying might be fulfilled." If in this case all that can possibly be meant by it is, that the words quoted well accord with, and describe, the inci- dent to which they are applied, then nothing more can be inferred, ex vi termini, from its use in any other case. XII. 39-41. Therefore they could not believe, because that Esaias said again, " He hath blinded their eyes, and hardened their heart ; that they should not see with their eyes, nor understand with their heart, and be converted, and I should heal them." These things said Esaias, when he saw his glory, and spake of him. The quotation, which is from the Book of Isaiah (vi. 10 ; comp. pp. 80 9 81, 130), is very inexactly 180 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XIII. 18. made. The language which introduces it, " because that Esaias said," is quite strong ; but from the con- text (Is. vi. 5, 8) nothing can possibly be clearer than that Isaiah is speaking of his own ministry, and the insensibility which it had to encounter on the part of his own contemporaries. The words well described the dulness of those whom Jesus addressed, and as such John applied them. It is as if he had said, " They would not believe," — the truth could not reach them, — because their senses were obtuse, and their hearts hard, just as Isaiah said was the case with the men of his own time. The words (" These things said Esaias," &c.) subjoined to the quotation, I understand to be John's reference to the place in Isaiah's book from which the quotation was taken : — I quote these words, he means to say, from that part of Isaiah's writings where he poetically describes a vision of the Divine glory (Is. vi. 1 et seq. ; " Lectures," &c., Vol. III. pp. 186 - 188). " When he saw his glory " ; that is, the glory of him who in the words quoted is intro- duced (John xii. 40) speaking of himself as willing to "heal." XIII. 18. I speak not of you all ; I know whom I have chosen ; but, that the Scripture may be fulfilled, " He that eateth bread with me hath lifted up his heel against me." The Psalmist (xli. 9 ; comp. " Lectures," &c., Vol. IV. p. 323), speaking of the cruel ingratitude of which he was himself the object, had said: "Yea, mine own familiar friend, in whom I trusted, which did eat of my bread, hath lifted up his heel against me." Our Lord quotes the words in application to the treachery of Judas, changing, however, " did eat of my bread" to " eateth bread with me." If any one chooses to XVII. 12.] GOSPEL OF JOHN. 181 entertain the fancy, that the words of the Psalm were prophetical of the conduct of the false disciple, he of course supposes the writer to have spoken in the per- son of Jesus. Let him consider how he will reconcile that hypothesis with another part of the Psalm : " I said, ; Lord, be merciful unto me ; heal my soul ; for I have sinned against thee ' " (xli. 4). XV. 25. This cometh to pass, that the word might be fulfilled that is written in their Law : " They hated me without a cause." " That is written in their Laiv " ; see above, p. 178. The words quoted occur in two of the Psalms (xxxv. 19, Ixix. 4 ; comp. cix. 3), where quite plainly the writer is expressing his sense of personal injury. They belong to that very small number of poems in the Psalter, so painful to the feelings of the Christian reader, which express the bitterest vindictiveness. To suppose that they are words used by inspiration concerning the future experiences of Jesus, involves the impossibility of attributing to him language the most directly op- posed to the humane and forgiving spirit of his relig- ion. The fulfilment, in this case, of " the word written in their Law," consisted simply in the fact that Jesus was hated without a cause, as the writer of the Psalms referred to complained that he himself had been. XVII. 12. While I was with them in the world, I kept them in Thy name ; those that Thou gavest me I have kept, and none of them is lost but the son of perdition, that the Scripture might be fulfilled. I think that the Old Testament will be searched in vain for any Scripture which can with any probability be interpreted as referring to the apostasy of Judas. 16 182 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XVIII. 8, 9. I think that the fulfilment of Scripture here brought to view refers, not to the loss of the son of perdition, but to the keeping of the other disciples of Jesus ; a sense which will disclose itself if we throw the last clause but one into a parenthesis, thus : " Those that Thou gavest me I have kept faithful (so that no one of them is lost, except that son of perdition), that the Scripture might be fulfilled." The Scripture was to be fulfilled through the triumphant establishment of the Messiah's kingdom in the world ; and the Mes- siah's kingdom was to be established through the faithful adherence and service of his chosen followers. Thus it was that Jesus had kept his followers faithful (with one only exception), " that the Scripture might be fulfilled." ' XVIII. 8,9. Jesus answered, " I have told you that I am he ; if, therefore, ye seek me, let these go their way " ; that the saying might he fulfilled which he spake, " Of them which Thou gavest me have I lost none." The quotation here is not from the Old Testament ; but being introduced with the same form of words which often precedes Old Testament quotations, it furnishes an illustration of the import of that phrase- ology. When Jesus had used the language here quoted (see John xvii. 12), it is as certain from the context as any thing can be, that he had not been predicting any future incident whatever, but had been referring to his past watch over his disciples, and its success evinced in their fidelity. Yet the Evangelist, who could not but have understood his Master as he has caused his Master to be understood by us, now declares that Jesus subsequently interceded with the Jewish officers for the release of his followers, to the end that those words XIX. 24.] GOSPEL OF JOHN. 183 " might be fulfilled." It seems to be placed beyond a doubt by this instance alone, that the fulfilment so often pointed out in connection with quotations in the New Testament means simply the suitableness of an accommodation to one event, of language originally applied to some other event. Jesus at this time (xviii. 8) interposed to protect his disciples, agreeably to that superintendence of them which in another sense he had spoken of at another time (xvii. 12). XIX. 7. The Jews answered him : " We have a Law, and by our Law he ought to die, because he made himself the Son of God." In this text I find further proof that the title Son of God is simply equivalent to Messiah. Nowhere in the Law is death made the penalty of professing one's self the Son of God in those terms, but it is expressly de- nounced against the false assumption of the character of the prophet like unto Moses, afterwards called the Messiah. (Dent xviii-. 18, 20.) XIX. 24. That the Scripture might be fulfilled which saith, " They parted my raiment among them, and for my vesture they did cast lots." The Scripture here quoted is from a Psalm (xxii. 18), in which, if there is any meaning in language, the writer is setting forth his own wrongs and sorrows, and by no means bewailing those of any future sufferer. (See " Lectures," &c, Vol. IV. p. 322.) He says in effect : So confident are my enemies of my ruin and my fall, that even now they are planning for the dis- tribution of my effects among themselves. The Evan- gelist, when he said that the soldiers made a partition of the garments of Jesus, " that the Scripture might 184 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XIX. 28. be fulfilled," meant simply that the incident might be described in the same language as had been used by an ancient sufferer. So plain is this, that it seems quite superfluous to add, that John is the only one of the Evangelists who has pointed out the correspond- ence, though all four (comp. Matt, xxvii. 35 ; Mark xv. 24 ; Luke xxiii. 34) have related the occurrence ; a fact scarcely to be reconciled with the supposition of a supernatural prediction fulfilled by it. XIX. 28. After this, Jesus, knowing that all things were now accomplished, that the Scripture might be fulfilled, saith, " I thirst." Under a wrong impression, as I conceive, of the true construction of this sentence, commentators have searched for the words " I thirst " in Jewish Scrip- ture, and have found, not those words, but the words " in my thirst " (Ps. lxix. 21). I understand the mean- ing of the Evangelist to be that which to a careful reader is disclosed by the following punctuation, cor- responding to what is exhibited in Griesbach's manual edition of the original Greek ; viz. " Jesus, knowing that all things were now accomplished that the Scrip- ture might be fulfilled, saith, " I thirst." That is, Jesus, knowing that he had now acquitted himself of his whole task in establishing his kingdom, — that every thing to the last had now been done by him that was to be done for the accomplishment of his work as Mes- siah, and accordingly for the fulfilment of Scripture, which had spoken of that work, — now permitted his mind for the first time to turn to his own sufferings, and to breathe out in a single word the agony of his mortal fever. He did not say, " I thirst," for the pur- pose of fulfilling any Scripture. But, knowing that nothing was left to be done of that work by which he XIX. 36.] GOSPEL OF JOHN. 185 was to fulfil Scripture, he was at liberty to spend one thought upon himself. XIX. 36. These things were done, that the Scripture should be fulfilled : " A bone of him shall not be broken." Nothing can be more express than this language, if we insist on interpreting it without regard to idiom and usage. The words of the Old Testament, " Nei- ther shall ye break a bone thereof," were " fulfilled" by the forbearance of the soldiers to break the legs of Jesus ; and not only so, but the forbearance of the soldiers to break the legs of Jesus was to the very end " that the Scripture should be fulfilled." If ever there was a case in which the reductio ad absurdum was conclusive, it is so in the present instance to show that the popular interpretation of the phraseology re- lating to a fulfilment of Scripture cannot be sustained. The ceremony of the Paschal Feast was designed to commemorate the hasty departure of the Israelites from Egypt. It was accordingly full of indications and symbols of haste. " Thus shall ye eat it ; with your loins girded, your shoes on your feet, and your staff in your hand ; and ye shall eat it in haste." (Ex. xii. 11.) They were not even to stop to break the bones of the lamb, so as to taste the marrow. (Ibid. 46 ; comp. Numb. ix. 12 ; " Lectures," &c., Vol. I. p. 138.) And this direction, relating to a subject so en- tirely different, is said by the Evangelist to be " ful- filled " in the omission of the guard to break the legs of Jesus as he hung dead upon the cross. It is palpa- ble to sense that his only meaning was, that the words, transferred from their original signification, might be applied to what he was relating. 16* 186 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XIX. 37. XIX. 37. And again another Scripture saith, " They shall look on him whom they pierced." In the prophecy of Zechariah, God is represented as declaring that his unmerited clemency will melt his people to repentance and contrition. Self-condemned and abased, he says, they will turn back to the Divine Benefactor whom they have grieved and wounded by their impieties ; " they shall look upon me, whom they have pierced." (Zech. xii. 10 ; comp. " Lectures," &c., Vol. III. p. 493.) This had nothing whatever to do, nor did the Evangelist imagine it to have any thing to do, with the stabbing of the side of Jesus by the spear of a Roman soldier. But the words occurred to his memory as he wrote, and he set them down, as a rhe- torical accommodation, not as a mystical criticism. XX. 9. As yet they knew not the Scripture, that he must rise again from the dead. No wonder if they did not understand the Scripture as declaring that the Messiah was to rise again from the dead. For nowhere had the Old Testament Scrip- ture so declared. But this was not the Apostle's meaning. What he meant was, that they hitherto so interpreted the Scriptures, as to make it incredible to them that the Messiah should suffer and die, which death was indispensable to his rising again. Like others of the most religious part of their countrymen at that period, they erroneously ascribed to the later writers of their nation, the Psalmists and the Prophets, an authority similar to that of the original revelation embodied in the Law of Moses. The Psalmists and Prophets had erroneously spoken of the Messiah as a I. 15-22.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 187 magnificent, and sometimes, perhaps, as an immortal prince, in such terms as to misguide the opinions of simple men, of the class to which John and Peter be- longed. Possessed with these views of the authority and interpretation of the national writings later than Moses, — their minds occupied with incorrect concep- tions of the Messiah drawn from those writings, — " as yet they knew not the Scripture " in such a manner as to allow them to entertain the idea " that he must rise again from the dead." They had not learned to reconcile the Scripture with that idea. It was not that Scripture had declared that he would so rise. It had declared nothing of the kind. But they supposed that it had authoritatively declared the contrary. And this confounded them. (Comp. Mark ix. 32.) After- wards they knew better. (Also with ypa$r\ comp. ye- ypa/jufievov, as explained above, p. 117.) SECTION V. ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. I. 15-22. In those days Peter stood up in the midst of the disciples, and said, " Men and brethren, this Scripture must needs have been fulfilled, which the Holy Ghost by the mouth of David spake before concerning Judas, which was guide to them that took Jesus For it is written in the book of Psalms, ' Let his habitation be desolate, and let no man dwell therein ' ; and ; His bishopric let another take.' Wherefore of these men must one be ordained to be a witness with us of his resurrection." Peter quoted on this occasion from two of the vitu- perative Psalms (lxix., cix.). Nothing more is necessary 188 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 15-22. than to read them, to be satisfied that in neither had the writer any reference to Judas, or to any future person, but that both, on the contrary, contained the expression of personal resentment against personal enemies. In one, the quotation is by no means exact ; so far from it, that, instead of a single person being spoken of, — a point most material for the common explanation, — the language of the original is, " Let their habitation be desolate, and let none dwell in their tents." In both, if Judas was intended at all, he was intended through- out, for the same person or persons are spoken of from the beginning to the end of the compositions respec- tively. What harm had Judas done to the writer of these poems % Yet the persons of whom it is wished that their " habitation " may " be desolate " (lxix. 25), and that another may " take their office " (cix. 8), are the same who had given to one writer " gall for his meat," and " vinegar to drink" in his thirst (lxix. 21), and who had opened against the other " the mouth of the deceitful," and spoken against him " with a lying tongue " (cix. 2). But the case is too plain for argument. All that is requisite, in order to be satisfied what the original writers intended, is to read their poems with an un- biased mind. As to Peter's purpose in quoting from them, I think it is somewhat lost sight of in conse- quence of incorrect punctuation and translation of his words, as recorded by Luke. I would represent the first of the sentences containing Peter's proposal thus : " Men and brethren, the Scripture which the Holy Spirit by the mouth of David anciently spoke, must needs be fulfilled concerning Judas [must have a ful- filment in Judas], who was guide to them that took Jesus." What was this Scripture \ It consisted in periods which he quotes, relating to vacating a place, II. 14-21.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 189 and being superseded in it by another : " Let his hab- itation be desolate," and, " His bishopric let another take." And how was that Scripture to be fulfilled ? By proceeding, as Peter proposes, to an election to fill the vacant office : " Of these men must one be ordained to be a witness with us." " This Scripture must needs be fulfilled con- cerning Judas," &c. Rather, it is Jit, or it has become fit, that the words should be verified in the case of Ju- das ; that is, by the filling of his office. The word rendered " must needs," is the same common word (Zhei) which in the Second Epistle to the Corinthians (ii. 3), for instance, is rendered, " I ought to rejoice," or it is fit that I should rejoice. " This Scripture which the Holy Ghost by the mouth of David spake before." Spake before {wpoelire) signifies spoke formerly or anciently. (See 2 Cor. vii. 3 ; Gal. i. 9, v. 21 ; 1 Thes. iv. 6 ; Heb. x. 15.) — The Holy Ghost spake by the mouth of David ; that is, the spirit of holy indignation in David's heart gave itself utterance in these words of his. We say, a patriotic, a devout, a selfish, a treacherous spirit spoke by a man, meaning that the man gave utterance to such a spirit, that he spoke in such a frame of mind. We say, " There spoke the spirit of martyrdom " ; " There was the utterance of the spirit of '76." II. 14-21. Peter, standing up with the eleven, lift up his voice, and said unto them, " Ye men of Judea, and all ye that dwell at Je- rusalem, be this known unto you, and hearken to my words : for these are not drunken, as ye suppose, seeing it is but the third hour of the day. But this is that which was spoken by the prophet Joel : " And it shall come to pass in the last days, (saith God,) I will pour out of my Spirit upon all flesh : and your sons and your daughters shall prophesy, and your young 190 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [II. 14-21. men shall see visions, and your old men shall dream dreams : and on my servants and on my handmaidens I will pour out in those days of my Spirit ; and they shall prophesy : and I will show wonders in heaven above, and signs in the earth beneath ; blood, and fire, and vapor of smoke : the sun shall be turned into darkness, and the moon into blood, before that great and notable day of the Lord come : and it shall come to pass, that whosoever shall call on the name of the Lord shall be saved." Peter's quotation from the prophecy of Joel (ii. 28 - 32), for the most part, follows the original. The principal deviations are the addition of the words, " and they shall prophesy" (Acts ii. 18), and the trans- position of two clauses at the end of the next preced- ing verse. After the effusion of the spirit on the day of Pente- cost, the disciples " began to speak with other tongues " (Ibid. 4). " This," said Peter, " is that which was spoken by the prophet Joel." What was his meaning in this/? Did he mean that Joel, by supernatural foresight, had predicted the events of that day, and that his prediction had come to pass % How could that be 1 What " young men " appeared to have " seen visions," and " old men " to have " dreamed dreams " % Where were the " wonders in heaven above, and signs in the earth beneath " \ Where the "blood, and fire, and vapor of smoke" 1 ? When had the sun been " turned into darkness, and the moon into blood " % Nothing of this sort was Peter's meaning. Had Joel's language been supernatural prediction, it must have been exact and infallible, and it must have been precisely fulfilled. Had there been any such precise fulfilment 1 The narrative answers that question. The fact simply was, that Joel, referring to the ad- vent of the future Messiah, of whose character and II. 14-21.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 191 office lie had but imperfect and erroneous conceptions, had indulged himself in a pomp and prodigality of poetical imagery. But still what he had intended to speak of was the Messiah's advent. So Peter cor- rectly understood him. Now the Messiah's advent had actually taken place. And it was for Peter, on the day of Pentecost, to announce that it had taken place. And when, the attention of the crowd having been fixed by the manifest miracle, he came forward and declared, " This is that which was spoken by the prophet Joel," what he meant to say, and all that he meant to say, was this : Behold, that time of the Mes- siah at length has come, which every Jew has for ages been expecting, and of which Joel, with his obscure conception of it, spoke thus in his boldly figurative language, eight centuries ago. In or before Hezekiah's time, Joel, having no more knowledge on the subject than his contemporaries, but speaking the common sense of the nation, anticipated the Messiah's coming, and, in the use of a common expedient of the poetical art, represented God as pre- announcing it. (Joelii. 19 etseq.; comp. "Lectures," &c., Vol. II. pp. 433, 434.) In the same vein of poetical amplification, he depicted it as destined to be attended with certain striking physical phenomena (Joel ii. 30, 31 ; comp. « Lectures," &c, Vol. II. pp. 328 - 330) ; phenomena which nobody pretends to have in fact oc- curred coincidently with the appearance of Jesus. To the multitude at Jerusalem, seven or eight hundred years after Joel, Peter declared that the event referred to by Joel had taken place. But he did not pretend to prove what he said by showing that a supernatural prediction had been fulfilled. Considered as super- natural prediction, the words of Joel had by no means been fulfilled. We cannot look at them — Peter 192 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [II. 25-32. could not have looked at them — in that light ; for, taken literally, we must own that they had been falsi- fied (Acts ii. 19, 20). Peter's proof of what he has announced is not at all of that sort. Having declared, in the use of the passage from Joel, that the Messiah had come, — " this is that which was spoken by the prophet Joel" (ii. 16), — he goes on to establish it (ii. 22, 24, 40) by quite other kinds of proof than by appeals to prophecy ; viz. by pointing to Christ's supernatural works (" Jesus of Nazareth, a man ap- proved of God among you by miracles, and ivonders, and signs, which God did by him in the midst of you, as ye yourselves do know ") ; by bearing witness to his resurrection from the grave (" whom God hath raised up, having loosed the pains of death ") ; and by meth- ods of conviction which are not specified in the record (" with many other words did he testify "). In connection with these first specimens of the preaching of Apostles to unbelievers, after the death of their Master, I submit this question : If the Apos- tles believed that the evidence from predictions of the Jewish prophets made part of the evidence of Chris- tianity, why did they not more frequently adduce it I why did they not call attention to more of those numerous passages, which, to later commentators, have seemed so important ? for though miracles might safely be left to speak for themselves, prophe- cies would be but too likely to escape attention, unless pointed out. II. 25-32. David speaketh concerning him, " I foresaw the Lord always before my face ; for he is on my right hand, that I should not be moved : therefore did my heart rejoice, and my tongue was glad : moreover, also, my flesh shall rest in hope ; be- 11.25-32.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 193 cause thou wilt not leave my soul in hell, neither wilt thou suffer thine Holy One to see corruption. Thou hast made known to me the ways of life ; thou shalt make me full of joy with thy countenance. Men and brethren, let me freely speak unto you of the patriarch David, that he is both dead and buried, and his sepulchre is with us unto this day. Therefore being a prophet, and knowing that God had sworn with an oath to him, that of the fruit of his loins one should sit on his throne ; he, seeing this before, spake of the res- urrection of Christ, that he was not left in hell, neither his flesh did see corruption. This Jesus hath God raised up, whereof we all are witnesses." Peter quotes from a Psalm (xvi. 8-11). I think that he understood the passage to have referred, in its original meaning, to the Messiah, and that he was right in so understanding it. I do not suppose that Peter regarded the writer of that Psalm as having possessed any knowledge respecting the Messiah's resurrection from the grave, or any knowledge concerning him not generally possessed by his countrymen in the same age, or any supernatural knowledge on any subject. Elsewhere (" Lectures," &c, Vol. IV. pp. 319, 320) I have used the following language : — " I conceive that in this Psalm Ave have an expression of the sentiments, purposes, and hopes of David, and that he speaks not at all in the person of the Messiah, but in his own person. At the same time, I think that in the latter part of the Psalm he had in view the expected advent of his greater successor, and that accordingly the Apostles Peter and Paul put the natural and correct construction upon his words in their original meaning, when they declared him to have referred therein to the " raising up " of the future Messiah. I take the case to have been this. Possessed with the opinion, current in his nation, that the splendid fortunes understood to await it were to be enjoyed through the instrumentality of an illustri- 17 194 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [II. 25-32. cms monarch of his own line, David, in expressing his grateful sense of the various goodness of God which had distinguished him, is led especially to rejoice that his glory is not to pass away with his life ; but that he is to enjoy a virtual immortality in his greater offspring. Recognizing Jehovah as being on his right hand, his immovable champion, he feels that his pros- perity is perennial and secure. His heart is glad, and his spirit rejoices, in the thought, that death, the universal leveller, cannot prostrate him. He will lay down his body to its last rest in hope, for he knows that he is not to lie down to nothingness and oblivion. He will not be wholly abandoned to the grave ; the greatness of David will not be all swallowed in the pit. He will revive in his magnificent son ; a living branch will be made to spring from the dead root ; and thus, though compelled, like others, to undergo in his own person the sentence of mortality, God will lead him, in the person of his descendant and repre- sentative, along the ways of life and action. Full, therefore, shall be his joy in Him who is thus present with him at all times ; endless his satisfactions in the Divine Protector for ever at his right hand. This con- ception (by no means violent, or transcending very narrow limits of the license of poetry) of life renewed and prolonged in one's descendants, is the same which has been already remarked upon as expressed in other Psalms." (Comp. "Lectures," &c, Vol. IV. pp. 311, 318 ; also 2 Sam. vii. 12 - 16 ; 1 Kings xi. 36 ; 2 Kings viii. 19.) I suppose that this is the correct construction of this ode, and that it was the construction put upon it by Peter. That Apostle, I conceive, argued to the fol- lowing effect : — " David was speaking (Acts ii. 25) concerning him II. 25-32.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 195 [with reference to the future Christ, when he said], ' I foresaw the Lord,' " &c. The royal poet could not have been speaking of himself with strict individual reference ; for, as we all know, he was mortal ; " he is both dead and buried, and his sepulchre is with us unto this day " (29). When David said that he was not to die, he must have meant that he was to have a con- tinued life in his offspring. He was persuaded that from his posterity God would raise up Christ to " sit on his throne " (30), and when he rejoiced that God would not give him up to the grave, nor suffer him to see the pit, he must be understood to have been speak- ing " of the resurrection [rather, of the raising up] of Christ" (31). " This Jesus hath God raised up [that is, This Christ, even Jesus, hath God now raised up, or, This Christ hath God now raised up, in the person of Jesus], whereof we all are witnesses " (32). Such I take to have been Peter's exposition of the passage which he quotes, — a correct exposition of the sense which David, the writer of the Psalm, in- tended to express. And if so, Peter does not ascribe to David any supernatural knowledge concerning the resurrection of Jesus, nor any knowledge or opinion whatever respecting the future Christ, which was not shared by David's contemporaries. "David speaketh concerning him" (ii. 25); that is, with reference to the Messiah's advent, as I have ren- dered it above, in conformity with the common version. If, instead of " concerning him " (m clvtov), we should read concerning himself (eU avrov), we should then un- derstand Peter as saying that David applied the words quoted to himself, in reference to the immortality which awaited him in his offspring. "My flesh shall rest in hope (lir ekiflBi, HmS) ; hecause (ore, O) thou wilt not leave my soul (i. e. me) 196 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [11.25-32. in the pit," &c. (26, 27). I am much inclined to ren- der these words thus : " My flesh shall rest (or, repose) upon the hope, that thou wilt not leave," &c. " Neither wilt thou suffer thine holy one to see cor- ruption" (27; comp. Deut. xvii. 20; Ps. xxxvii. 28). On my interpretation, David calls himself God's " holy one," or saint. There was no singularity in his giving himself that title (comp. Deut. xxxiii. 8 ; 2 Chron. vi. 41 ; Ps. xxx. 4, xxxvii. 28, lxxxvi. 2, lxxxix. 19), though in fact the genuine original of the Hebrew was probably in the plural number, " thy holy ones." " Therefore, being a prophet" (30). The Old Testa- ment history nowhere represents David as possessing supernatural foreknowledge, or any supernatural en- dowment or prerogative. On the contrary, it repre- sents the prophet Nathan as the medium of Divine communications to him (2 Sam. vii. 4 et seq.), and where the strongest encomium is passed upon him, no such character is attributed (ibid, xxiii. 1). David is said to speak as " a prophet," in the sense that in the words quoted he spoke, not (as at first view might seem) of present time, but (not supernaturally, how- ever) of future. (See above, pp. 73, 174 - 177.) The very clause refers to what (if we credit the history) he did not become acquainted with by inspiration of his own, but by a message through Nathan (2 Sam. vii. 11, 12). " Knowing that God had sworn with an oath to him, that of the fruit of his loins, according to the flesh, he would raise up Christ, to sit on his throne," &c. (30). The genuine reading here is, " that of the fruit of his loins one should sit on his throne," or " that of the fruit of his loins He (God) would seat one on his throne." The Greek answering to the intervening words in the received text is spurious. (Comp. Gries- 11.25-32.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 197 bach, " Nov. Test.," ad loc). — The word rendered " knowing " (etSw?) sometimes means no more than being persuaded, without implying any thing respecting the correctness of the persuasion (comp. olha, Acts xx. 25). — " Knowing (or persuaded) that God had sworn with an oath to him " ; that is, persuaded, like his con- temporaries, that it was God's solemn and fixed pur- pose concerning him. The phraseology in which this purpose is represented as taking the form of an oath is derived from one of the Psalms (cxxxii. 11 ; comp. ex. 4; also, "Lectures," &c, Vol. IV. pp. 310, 315). — Peter's sense is conveyed, I suppose, in the follow- ing paraphrase : David, speaking, in the Psalm quoted, of the future, and persuaded that it was the Divine purpose that the Messiah should be his descendant (since, in his mind, the prophet predicted by Moses was identified with a monarch of his own race), had in view the coming of that Christ whose actual com- ing I and my fellow-Apostles now announce. " He, seeing this before, spake of the resurrection of Christ" (31). The Greek word (avaarda^) is not, I suppose, correctly translated here " resurrection." Its primitive meaning — raising up — is equally applica- ble to a revival from the dead (or resurrection), and to a being brought into the world, or elevated to some conspicuous service (comp. Judges ii. 16, 18, iii. 15 ; Acts xiii. 22, et al. h. m.). The context, I think, de- termines the latter to be the true sense in the present instance. " The Lord thy God," Moses had said (Deut. xviii. 15), " will raise up unto thee a prophet from the midst of thee ; unto him ye shall hearken." " This Jesus hath God raised up" now says Peter (Acts ii. 32), " whereof we all are witnesses." It was not a resurrection of the Messiah from the grave that Moses spoke of, or that Peter spoke of, taking up 17* 198 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [11.25-32. Moses's words, but the Messiah's coming into the ivorld, and assuming his office (comp. iii. 22, 26). And to this raising up, this coming of the Messiah, and not his resurrection, it is quite evident to me that Peter declared David to have referred in the words quoted by Peter from David's Psalm (ii. 30, 31). This, which I do not remember to have seen else- where stated, seems to me certain. One part of the context may appear to the reader to conflict with it. " Him ye have taken," it is said, " and by wicked hands have crucified and slain, whom God hath raised up, having loosed the pains of death" (ii. 23, 24). Here, it may be urged, the raising up spoken of is speci- fied as being from the grave. I answer, — 1. Suppose it is so, how does that fact control the interpretation of the rest of the passage ^ Jesus was raised up as the Messiah, and he had a resurrection from the grave ; and the word used by Peter {avecrr^ae) is equally appli- cable to both. That the respective contexts should determine the word to have the one signification in one verse, and the other in another, is nothing surprising. But, 2. I am by no means certain that the fact is as assumed. I do not know but that Peter, when he said that God had "raised up" Jesus, "having loosed the pains of death," meant to refer to him as being raised up in the sense which I have given to the expression in the following verses. Jesus had been put to death ; " by wicked hands " he had been " crucified and slain." If God meant to raise him up in the office and dignity of Messiah, it could only be by " loosing the pains of death " for him. And accordingly there would be noth- ing unnatural in construing the words raised up in this verse precisely as in those on which I have remarked at length. Jesus, says the Apostle, " by wicked hands " was " crucified and slain." But God has restored him II. 34-36.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 199 to life, and so, in despite of the murderous malice of his enemies, has fulfilled the promise made to Moses, of raising up the Messiah. It is true he was crucified. But that did not put an end to his claim. God raised him to the office of Messiah, notwithstanding. II. 34-36. David is not ascended into the heavens : but he saith himself, " The Lord said unto my Lord, i Sit thou on my right hand, until I make thy foes thy footstool.' " Therefore let all the house of Israel know assuredly, that God hath made that same Jesus, whom ye have crucified, both Lord and Christ. The quotation is from a Psalm, in which I under- stand David to have referred to the exaltation of his great expected successor. (See Ps. ex. 1 ; above, p. 107; "Lectures," &c, Vol. IV. pp. 314-316.) I paraphrase Peter's words as follows : — " Being by the right hand of God exalted," I say (ii. 33) ; for he is exalted by God to be the medium of his spiritual communications to men ; and to him ac- cordingly may be fitly applied those words of David, " The Lord said unto my Lord, ' Sit thou on my right hand, until I make thy foes thy footstool.' " Those words, indeed, originally, — though in a lower sense, — must be understood to have been spoken by David concerning the Messiah whom he looked for. It is impossible to suppose that he had himself in view, for he was merely a great monarch ; nor in any sense naturally conveyed by the words can he be said to have ascended into heaven, or to have sat down at God's right hand (34, 35). In view, then, of the miracle now wrought before your eyes (2-4, 33), and of the other supernatural works of Jesus to which I have called your attention (22), let all the nation of Israel be as- suredly persuaded that that Jesus, whom they have just 200 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [III. 18. put to death by crucifixion, was no other than the august personage whom under the name of Christ (31) and of Lord (34) their fathers and they have for ages been looking for (36). III. 18. Those things, which God before had showed by the mouth of all his prophets, that Christ should suffer, he hath so fulfilled. The word here translated " suffer " does not neces- sarily signify painful experience. It denotes simply experience of whichsoever kind. The prophets (or preachers) had spoken of the coming of Christ, ac- cording to their conceptions of him. In part (so far as they relied on and reproduced the revelation by Moses) they had spoken correctly, in part they had spoken incorrectly, of the future Christ's experiences, — of his position, office, and agency. So far as they had spoken correctly, God " had showed by their mouth," because he had showed by the mouth of Moses, whose representation their representations did but repeat. They had not represented the Christ as destined to be outraged and put to a violent death, as Jesus was. Such was by no means their idea of him. What they had said of his greatness and exaltation, of the things " that Christ should experience," and the empire he should attain, God had now brought to pass in a way which they had by no means looked for. Their anticipations of a dominion for their hero, says Peter, God " hath so fulfilled," fulfilled in this unex- pected way, allotting a life of hardship to his beloved Son, and a cruel death to " the Prince of Life" (15). III. 21. Whom the heaven must receive, until the times of restitution of all things, which God hath spoken by the mouth of his holy prophets, since the world began. III. 22-26.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 201 " Whom the heaven must receive." He is ho earthly ruler, as has been thought (comp. Acts i. 6). He has been taken to heaven, and is invisible there. Nor will he any more be made manifest, except in that establishment of his kingdom which will take place when his religion supersedes Judaism. For " restitu- tion " {anTOKaraGTaai^ I would rather read accomplish- ment, or consummation (see, however, Matt. xvii. 11, and comp. Mai. iv. 5, 6). — " God hath spoken by the mouth of his holy prophets." I have remarked on the same expression above (p. 200). — " Since the world (alwv) began." The " world " here spoken of, I take to be the age of the Jewish dispensation (see above, p. 78). III. 22-26. Moses truly said unto the fathers, " A prophet shall the Lord your God raise up unto you of your brethren, like unto me ; him shall ye hear in all thinga whatsoever he shall say unto you. And it shall come to pass, that every soul which will not hear that Prophet shall be destroyed from among the people." Yea, and all the prophets from Samuel, and those that follow after, as many as have spoken, have likewise told of these days. Ye are the children of the prophets, and of the covenant which God made with our fathers, saying unto Abraham, " And in thy seed shall all the kindreds of the earth be blessed." Unto you first, God, hav- ing raised up his Son, sent him to bless you, in turning away every one of you from his iniquities. I regard this passage as very expressly confirming that view which I have taken repeated occasion to state and maintain, respecting the promise through Moses of a " prophet " (or teacher) to be " raised up " in future time (Deut. xviii. 15), as being the foundation and germ of the Jewish conception of the Messiah, entertained through the series of later ages. I have spoken, says Peter, of the state of things 202 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [IV. 11. now opening, as the accomplishment of what your teachers have had in view " since the world began " (21), — ever since the institution of the Jewish pecu- liarity ; since the age began, I say, for Moses himself, who laid its foundations, " said to the fathers " of the race, " A prophet shall the Lord your God raise up unto you," &c. (22, 23). And that same event which Moses thus foretold has (with whatever mixture of error with his truth) been had in view, on his authority, by the whole succession of teachers of our nation since his time ; " as many as have spoken have likewise foretold of these days " ; this advent of Jesus, and nothing different or future, fulfils whatever has been truly anticipated respecting the setting up of the Mes- siah's reign (24). To you, successors of the teachers and of the patriarchs, is it granted now to experience the fulfilment of that other promise made by God to the founder of your race, when he said, " In thy seed shall all the kindreds of the earth be blessed." God promised by Moses that he would " raise up a prophet " (Deut. xviii. 15) ; he hath done so, " having raised up his Son," Jesus. He promised to Abraham, " In thy seed shall all the kindreds of the earth be blessed" (Gen. xii. 3, xviii. 18). He hath made this promise good, in that he hath sent a spiritual deliverer, a bearer of the richest of all blessings, — in that, " having raised up his Son (Jesus), he hath sent him to bless you" To " bless you," how % He defines the way, left undefined in the original promise. It was, by " turning away every one of you from his iniquities." IV. 11. This is the stone which was set at naught of you builders, which is become the head of the corner. See above, p. 103. To Jesus, says Peter, well may the language of the Psalmist (cxviii. 22) be applied. IV. 24-28.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 203 IV. 24-28. They lifted up their voice to God with one accord, and said, "Lord, thou art God, which hast made heaven, and earth, and the sea, and all that in them is ; who by the mouth of thy servant David hast said, ' Why did the heathen rage, and the people imagine vain things ? The kings of the earth stood up, and the rulers were gathered together against the Lord, and against his Christ.' For of a truth, against thy holy child Jesus, whom thou hast anointed, both Herod and Pontius Pilate with the Gentiles and the people of Israel were gathered together in this city, for to do whatsoever thy hand and thy counsel determined before to be done." Peter and John first glorify in their own language the power of God, which had now rescued them from danger, and on which they relied for protection for the future : " Lord, thou art God," &c. (24). They next (25, 26) glorify it in the language used by David in one of his Psalms (ii. 1, 2; comp. "Lectures," &c., Vol. IV. pp. 316-318). And they show how that language is applicable to the event to which they apply it. " By the mouth of his servant David " God had said [David had poetically exhibited God as saying], " Why do the heathen rage, and the people imagine vain things 1 " so now, say the Apostles (Acts iv. 27), " the Gentiles and the people of Israel were gathered together." " The kings of the earth stood up," said the Psalmist, " and the rulers were gathered together " ; " both Herod and Pontius Pilate" say the Apostles (ibid.), — the first a king, the second a gov- ernor, — have now been "gathered together." They conspired, said the Psalmist, " against the Lord and against his anointed " ; here, again, say the Apostles (27), David's words are precisely in point ; for king and ruler, heathen and people, have combined against God's holy anointed child [or, servant] Jesus. — And then, to guard against any such unfavorable conclusion 204 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [VII. 2,3. as the Jews were wont to draw from Jesus's having been punished as a malefactor, they add that this ex- traordinary catastrophe was in accordance with God's mysterious purposes ; — " for to do whatsoever thy hand and thy counsel determined before to be done " (28 ; comp. ii. 23). VII. 2, 3. The God of glory appeared unto our father Abraham, when he was in Mesopotamia, before he dwelt in Charran, and said unto him, " Get thee out of thy country, and from thy kin- dred, and come into the land which I shall show thee." The discourse of Stephen, in this chapter, contains a recital of many of the most prominent events of the early Jewish history, with frequent quotations, more or less formal, of the language of the early writers. Several of them I shall pass over, as not affording occasion for any special remark. Some of the quota- tions differ from the original, either in the way of ad- dition, omission, or change ; and some of the state- ments of fact vary from the corresponding ones made by the Old Testament writer. We have no means of determining whether these inaccuracies are to be re- ferred to Stephen, to Luke, who undertook to record his words, or to the person, whoever he was, who heard and reported them to Luke. But the necessary inference from them appears to be, that, at least in some stage of the transmission, there was not that precise regard to the language of the Old Testament writers, which would have been inseparable from the opinion, had it existed, that that language was dictated by unerring inspiration. In the text above, it is in contradiction to the his- tory (Gen. xi. 31 -xii. 1), that the Divine summons is said to have been addressed to Abraham, " when he VII. 14.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 205 was in Mesopotamia, before he dwelt in Charran " ; and in the quotation, the words of the original, " and from thy father's house," are omitted, and the words " and come " are inserted in the last clause, in their place. VII. 4. From thence, when his father was dead, he removed him into this land. But, according to the statement in the history, Abra- ham was born when Terah, his father, was seventy years old (Gen. xi. 26), or thereabouts, and he left Ha- ran when himself " seventy and five years old " (ibid, xii. 4) ; when Terah, therefore, had about reached his one hundred and forty-fifth year. But Terah lived to be two hundred and five years old (ibid. xi. 32). It was not, therefore, according to the history, after Te- rah's death, but not far from sixty years before it, that Abraham migrated to Canaan. VII. 6, 7. And God spake on this wise : that his seed should sojourn in a strange land, and that they should bring them into bondage, and entreat them evil four hundred years. " And the nation to whom they shall be in bondage will I judge," said God ; " and after that shall they come forth, and serve me in this place." The quotation is from Genesis (xv. 13, 14), where we read " with great substance," instead of " and serve me in this place," which latter words seem to be taken from the account of the commission to Moses (Exod. iii. 12). Comp. Exod. xii. 40, 41; "Lectures," &c, Vol. I. p. 140. VII. 14. Then sent Joseph, and called his father Jacob to him, and all his kindred, threescore and fifteen souls. 18 206 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [VII. 16. In the history (Gen. xlvi. 27) the whole family of Jacob, including Joseph with his wife and sons, is reckoned to have been seventy in number. But the Septuagint version of the same passage gives Joseph nine sons, and, with Stephen, calls the whole number seventy-five. VII. 16. The sepulchre that Abraham bought for a sum of money of the sons of Emmor, the father of Sychem. Here is a confusion of two facts recorded in the history. It was Jacob, not Abraham, who " bought a parcel of a field at the hand of the children of Hamor, Shechem's father," and that not for a tomb, but for an altar (Gen. xxxiii. 19, 20). The sepulchre in which Jacob directed that his body should be laid was that of " Machpelah, which is before Mamre," bought by Abraham of Ephron, the Hittite (Gen. xlix. 29, 30 ; comp. xxiii. 3 - 20, 1. 12, 13). On the other hand, according to the record in the Book of Joshua (xxiv. 32), Joseph was actually buried in the place which the discourse of Stephen indicates. VII. 26. Sirs, ye are brethren ; why do ye wrong one to another ? The language of Moses, as recorded in the history, was, " "Wherefore smitest thou thy fellow % " (Exod. ii. 13.) VII. 37. This is that Moses, which said unto the children of Israel, " A prophet shall the Lord God raise up unto you of your breth- ren, like unto me ; him shall ye hear." Another express instance of that fact which I con- sider to be vital to a correct explanation of the rela- VII. 4.8-50.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. m 207 tion of the New Testament to the Old, namely, the identification, in the minds of the early disciples, of the Prophet promised by Moses with that Messiah whom they declared Jesus to be. VII. 42, 43. Then God turned, and gave them up to worship the host of heaven ; as it is written in the book of the prophets, " O ye house of Israel, have ye offered to me slain beasts, and sacri- fices, by the space of forty years in the wilderness ? Yea, ye took up the tabernacle of Moloch, and the star of your god Remphan, figures which ye made, to worship them : and I will carry you away beyond Babylon." The quotation, from the prophet Amos (v. 25 - 27), is made, like so many others in the New Testament, with a want of exactness quite inconsistent with the supposition of such a sanctity being attached to the words, as would have belonged to them had they been regarded as words uttered by Divine inspiration or suggestion. In " Remphan " (Acts vii. 43), compared with " Chiun " (Amos v. 26), the popular commenta- tors have been forced by their own principles to recog- nize a troublesome problem ; the former reading has a near resemblance to that of the Septuagint. " Be- yond Babylon " (Acts vii. 43), instead of " beyond Da- mascus " (Amos v. 27), is a very material alteration of the prophet's words. (Comp. " Lectures," &c., Vol. II. p. 401.) VII. 48-50. The Most High dwelleth not in temples made with hands ; as saith the prophet, " Heaven is my throne, and earth is my footstool : what house will ye build me ? saith the Lord ; or, what is the place of my rest ? Hath not my hand made all these things ? " The words are quoted from the pseudo-Isaiah (lxvi. 1, 2), with no important change. 208 . NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [VII. 52. VII. 52. Which of the prophets have not your fathers persecuted ? and they have slain them which showed before of the coming of the Just One, of whom ye have been now the betrayers and murderers. We see here the exaggerated representation of strong emotion. Regarded as a precise statement of fact, it would not be borne out by the Old Testament records. VIII. 32-35. The place of the Scripture which he read was this : " He was led as a sheep to the slaughter ; and like a lamb dumb before his shearer, so opened he not his mouth : in his humiliation his judgment was taken away : and who shall declare his generation ? for his life is taken from the earth." And the eunuch answered Philip, and said, " I pray thee, of whom speaketh the prophet this ? of himself, or of some other man ? " Then Philip opened his mouth, and began at the same Scripture, and preached unto him Jesus. The quotation is from the prophecy of Isaiah (liii. 7, 8). I have elsewhere expressed my opinion (" Lec- tures," &c, Vol. III. pp. 255-259) that, in the pas- sage to which it belongs, the writer, without any su- pernatural knowledge whatever respecting the future condition of Jesus of Nazareth, was referring to the expected Messiah in terms according with the concep- tion entertained of that personage by himself in com- mon with his contemporaries. When the Ethiopian officer asked Philip, " Of whom speaketh the prophet this 1 " Philip, we are told, " opened his mouth, and began at the same Scripture, and preached unto him Jesus." That is, I presume, Philip explained the passage in the way that I have done. Believing that to be the true exposition, I must needs suppose it to have been Philip's, if he was a correct interpreter. Philip, I suppose, replied to the Ethiopian, " The proph- X. 43.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 209 et is speaking, not by any miraculous foresight, but as any of his contemporaries might have spoken, of that illustrious personage called by our nation the Messiah, who was predicted by our lawgiver Moses, and who was expected by every Jew in this writer's time." Philip seized the happy occasion to impress the Ethiopian courtier's mind. He " preached unto him Jesus." " At last," said he, " in this age of ours, has appeared, in the person of Jesus, that Messiah of whom the an- cient prophet spoke." " He began at the same Scrip- ture " the discourse with which he undertook to en- force that truth. It was a Scripture that afforded a good opening and introduction to such a discourse. How the discourse proceeded, what topics it embraced, what methods of conviction it employed, we are not told ; but only that it was so satisfactory and persua- sive as to bring the officer to desire to be baptized in token of his faith in Jesus (36). X. 14. Peter said, "I have never eaten any thing that is com- mon or unclean." See Lev. xi., xx. 25 ; comp. " Lectures," &c, Vol. I.pp. 266-273. X. 43. To him give all the prophets witness, that, through his name, whosoever believeth in him shall receive remission of sins. With that reign of the Messiah which they looked for, the ancient writers of the nation had constantly connected the idea of a moral reformation, and conse- quent Divine forgiveness and favor. (See, e. g., Is. lix. 20; Jer. xxxi. 34; Dan. ix. 24; Mic. vii. 18; Zech. xiii. 1; Mai. iv. 2; comp. Matt. iii. 2, iv. 17; Acts xi. 18.) That Messiah, whose followers they repre- 18* 210 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XIII. 20. sented as having their sins remitted, has appeared, says Peter, in the person of Jesus, whom we preach ; but that remission of sins, he adds, is only to be ob- tained by any one, by believing in Jesus and becoming his disciple. XIII. 20. He gave unto them judges, about the space of four hundred and fifty years, until Samuel the prophet. Comp. "Lectures," &c, Vol. II. p. 130. XIII. 22. He raised up unto them David to be their king ; to whom also he gave testimony, and said, " I have found David the son of Jesse, a man after mine own heart, which shall fulfil all my will." Paul would never have quoted so inaccurately from the Old Testament writings, if he had entertained that opinion respecting their authority, which has been held by Christian commentators. (See 1 Sam. xiii. 14 ; Ps. lxxxix. 20, 21 ; and comp. " Lectures," &c, Vol. III. pp. 41-43.) XIII. 23. Of this man's seed hath God, according to his promise, brought unto Israel a Saviour, Jesus. God had promised to raise unto Israel a Saviour (Deut. xviii. 15), and a Saviour, as Paul says, he had now sent in the person of Jesus. He had raised him up, Paul adds, among the descendants of David; but this is no part of what he had promised, or of what Paul says that he had promised. — " Of this man's seed." I have remarked elsewhere (see above, p. 14) on Paul's avoidance of the expression " Son of David." XIII. 32,33.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 211 XIII. 27. They that dwell at Jerusalem, and their rulers, because they knew him not, nor yet the voices of the prophets which are read every Sabbath day, they have fulfilled them in con- demning him. How did the condemnation of Jesus fulfil the proph- ets % Not because those writers foretold his condem- nation. It is impossible to find such a prediction in their writings. But they had expatiated on the glories of a coming kingdom of the Messiah ; and as to the reality of that dominion they had spoken correctly, though they misunderstood its nature. The Messiah's kingdom had at length been established. Its estab- lishment had been brought about by a means which they had no conception of, namely, the condemnation and death of Jesus. In this sense that condemnation had fulfilled " the voices of the prophets," which voices the Jewish contemporaries of Paul " knew not " in any such manner as to discern the basis of truth that lay in them. They embraced the erroneous accident, and overlooked the essential substance. XIII. 29. When they had fulfilled all that was written of him, they took him down from the tree, and laid him in a sepulchre. For the meaning which, on the whole, I think should be put upon the word " written," in this place, see above, p. 117. The sentence may be explained, however, in the same manner as the text last com- mented upon. XIII. 32, 33. The promise which was made unto the fathers, God hath ful- filled the same unto us their children, in that he hath raised up Jesus again ; as it is also written in the first Psalm, " Thou art my Son, this day have I begotten thee." 212 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XIII. 32, 33. " The promise which was made unto the fathers," I take to be that made through Moses, " A prophet shall the Lord your God raise up" &c. (Deut. xviii. 15). " God hath fulfilled the same," says Paul, " unto us their children, in that he hath raised up Jesus " ; that is, sent him into the world. The word " again," in our version, indicating that it is the resurrection of Jesus from the dead to which Paul refers, is not in the origi- nal, but is superfluous and misleading. (Comp. Acts xiii. 23, 24.) The raising of Jesus "from the dead" was a different thing, of which Paul proceeds to speak in the next verse. "As it is also written in the first Psalm (ii. 7), ' Thou art my Son, this day have I begotten thee ' [or, ' this day have I made thee so ']." David may have intended in this Psalm " to represent the expected prince as speaking, and using language which would be suitable for him, supposing the conceptions entertained by his nation respecting his character and office to have been correct." (" Lectures," &c, Vol. IV. p. 317.) On that interpretation, the words were originally used by the writer of the poem in the same application which is made of them by Paul : " Thou art my Son, my chosen and beloved messenger to men ; I have constituted thee to that office." If, however, we prefer the other construction, and consider David as referring to him- self, and representing Jehovah as saying to him, " Thou [David] art my son," &c. (ibid.), we shall then under- stand Paul as quoting words originally used in refer- ence to David, and applying them to Jesus agreeably to the same principles and usages of composition which have already been treated so much at length. We shall understand him as saying, " The words of the first Psalm (" Thou art my Son," &c), originally used respecting the elevation of David to the regal XIII. 34-37.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 213 dignity, may be fitly applied to that institution of Jesus in the office of Messiah, which took place when God fulfilled in his person " the promise which was made unto the fathers." XIII. 34-37. And as concerning that he raised him up from the dead, now no more to return to corruption, he said on this wise : " I will give you the sure mercies of David." Wherefore he saith also in another Psalm, " Thou shalt not suffer thine Holy- One to see corruption." For David, after he had served his own generation by the will of God, fell on sleep, and was laid unto his fathers, and saw corruption : but he whom God raised again saw no corruption. By " the sure mercies of David," I understand the pseudo-Isaiah (lv. 3 ; comp. " Lectures," &c, Vol. III. p. 260), from whom Paul appears to have borrowed the phrase, to have meant the crowning mercies con- nected with the establishment of the Messiah's king- dom ; these the prophet calls " the sure mercies of David " (comp. Ps. lxxxix. 1 - 4), either because David had so often expressed his expectation of them, or be- cause the Messiah, according to this writer's concep- tion of him, was to be David's son. " The sure mer- cies of David," says Paul, God at last, after so many ages of hope deferred, has " given to you" ; — that event, of the establishment of the Messiah's reign, to which (with however imperfect knowledge) the prophet re- ferred when he used those words, was brought to pass when God " raised him up from the dead, now no more to return to corruption," agreeably to the lan- guage used in another Old Testament passage. (Acts xiii. 34, 35 ; comp. Ps. xvi. 10.) David, in that pas- sage, speaks in the first person : " Thou wilt not give me up to the grave," &c. But, argues Paul, it is im- possible to apply the words, in a strictly literal sense, 214 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XIII. 34-37. to that prince, for we know that he, " having served the will of God in his own generation [or, in his own individual life], fell on sleep, and was laid unto his fa- thers, and saw corruption " ; but the words are appli- cable to that Messiah whom I and my associates an- nounce. David did not expect to be immortal in his own person ; he expected to revive in the Messiah, his descendant ; and behold, the Messiah is now come. This exposition of Paul accords entirely with the view which I have taken of the Psalm in question. ("Lectures," &c., Vol. IV. pp. 318-320.) I have maintained, not simply that the words of that Psalm are applicable, in the way of accommodation, to the Messiah, but that the author had the Messiah in mind when he wrote them, and used them in reference to him ; and this not with any supernatural knowledge of the Messiah, but as any Jew of his time might have done. My only doubt is in respect to a minor point, which is somewhat subtle, but which at all events does not affect the main scheme of the interpretation. When Paul says, " he raised him up from the dead," and " he whom God raised again saw no corruption," the obvious construction is thought to be that which makes he and him represent Jesus. I shall not con- trovert this. It accords very well with my conception of the Psalm, and of Paul's purpose in quoting from it. Paul might well say that David's expectation of his own continued life in his race would not be real- ized in the Messiah unless the Messiah were immortal, which Jesus would be, now that God had " raised him up from the dead, now no more to return to corrup- tion." But perhaps it would be following out more consistently the idea which I understand to pervade the Psalm, and at the same time be doing no violence to Paul's language, to regard him as applying the XIII. 46, 47.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 215 words directly to David, and not to Jesus. Jesus was the Messiah. David had in view the sending of the Messiah (his own revival in his offspring) when he said of himself " thou wilt not leave me in the grave, nor suffer thine holy one to see corruption" ; and Paul may have meant to pursue precisely that idea when he said, that though David, regarded merely as one who in his own time had served God's will, had wholly passed away and seen corruption, yet that David, re- garded as the Messiah's predecessor, had seen no cor- ruption, David being revived in that personage. XIII. 40, 41. Beware, therefore, lest that come upon you which is spoken of in the prophets : " Behold, ye despisers, and wonder, and perish : for I work a work in your days, a work which ye shall in no wise believe, though a man declare it unto you." This text requires no explanation. Paul merely uses language of Habakkuk (i. 5) to enforce a remon- strance which the words well and earnestly conveyed, XIII. 46, 47. Lo, we turn to the Gentiles : for so hath the Lord commanded us, saying, " I have set thee to be a light of the Gentiles, that thou shouldest be for salvation unto the ends of the earth." I think that the " light to the Gentiles," intended by the pseudo-Isaiah (xlix. 6 ; comp. " Lectures," &c, Vol. III. p. 248) in the words here quoted by Paul, is the people of Israel (comp. Is. xlix. 3, 5). " So hath the Lord commanded us" says the Apostle, " saying, \ I have set thee to be a light of tne Gentiles,' " &c. If by " us " we understand Paul and his fellow-preach- ers, we shall then regard him as saying : The Lord hath given us a commission which may be fitly ex- 216 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XV. 13-17. pressed in these words of an ancient prophet. If we take " us " to mean, in Paul's quotation, what it did in the prophet's original words, then we shall interpret Paul thus : It was long ago said that the Jewish peo- ple was to be a " light of the Gentiles," and " for sal- vation unto the ends of the earth." We, apostles of Jesus, are about to make it so, when " we turn to the Gentiles," and publish to them a doctrine which had its birth in the bosom of the Jewish race. Other commentators, with not so much reason, as it seems to me, consider the " light to the Gentiles " spoken of to be the prophet himself; and others yet, with still less probability, to be the expected Messiah. If the former of these constructions is correct, then Paul says, in the words quoted : The Lord has given to me and Barnabas a like trust to what he was an- ciently represented as having given to his prophet. If the latter, then he addresses the Jewish cavillers as follows : My companion and myself " turn to the Gentiles " with our proclamation of Jesus, the Mes- siah, agreeably to that ancient conception of the Mes- siah, whereby he was represented as no monopoly of the race of Abraham, but " a light of the Gentiles," and " for salvation unto the ends of the earth." XV. 13-17. James answered, saying, " Simeon hath declared how God at the first did visit the Gentiles, to take out of them a people for his name. And to this agree the words of the prophets; as it is written, 4 After this I will return, and will build again the tabernacle of David, which is fallen down ; and I will build again the ruins thereof, and I will set it up. That the residue of men might seek after the Lord, and all the Gentiles, upon whom my name is called, saith the Lord, who doeth these things.' " James's quotation is from the prophecy of Amos XV. 13-17.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 217 (ix. 11, 12). In our common version James is repre- sented as proceeding thus (18): "Known unto God are all his works from the beginning of the world." But this clause is spurious. (See Griesbach, "Nov. Test.," ad loc.) The true reading is : "All the Gentiles, upon whom my name is called, saith the Lord, who doth these things, known from the beginning." The words " known from the beginning " do not occur at the end of the passage quoted by James from Amos (ix. 12); but perhaps (for the quotation is in no part accurately made) they correspond to the words of Amos in the previous verse (ix. 11), " as in the days of old," which words James (Acts xv. 16) omits from their proper place in the passage quoted. In the way in which he arranged them, he perhaps intended them to contain his comment on that adoption of the Gentiles which was now taking place, his words being equivalent to these : " Saith the Lord, who is making these things to be such as they were anciently recognized." Amos, when he wrote these words, was referring to the Messiah's reign (" Lectures," &c, Vol. II. pp. 404, 405), which, like all other Jews, he expected, though with an imperfect apprehension of its nature. And James merely states, that when Peter " declared how God at the first did visit the Gentiles, to take out of them a people for his name " (Acts xv. 14), he declared no hitherto unheard of principle of Divine administra- tion ; that, on the contrary, however unpalatable to his Jewish contemporaries, the ancient writers of the nation had recognized it in some sense, and that, at all events, it harmonized with their language. " To this agree the words of the prophets," he says ; and, to es- tablish this point, he quotes a passage from Amos, un- questionably referring to the Messiah's reign, and not restricting its benefits to Jews, but (in the form in 19 218 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XV. 20 (29). which James recites them) distinctly naming, as one of the concomitant circumstances, " that the residue of men might seek after the Lord, and all the Gentiles upon whom my name is called, saith the Lord." It must not be overlooked, that these last important words, on which rests the argument of the Apostle James, are not correctly quoted from Amos, who (in the Hebrew text) says in the place of them, " that they may possess the remnant of Edom, and of all the heathen which are called by my name, saith the Lord." Perhaps the Hebrew words of Amos, where he speaks of the heathen called by the Lord's name, are quite as much to James's purpose as those which he has substituted for them. But I think it altogether unquestionable, that, had he regarded them as containing supernatural prediction, it is not in this careless and inexact way that he would have appealed to them. James's quota- tion follows the Septuagint version much more nearly than the Hebrew. But his quotation, as reported by Luke, by no means represents that version exactly ; for instance, the Septuagint translators have nothing corresponding to the important words, "the Lord," after "seek." XV. 20 (29). That they abstain from pollutions of idols, and from fornication, and from things strangled, and from blood. See Exod. xxxiv. 15, 16 ; Lev. vii. 26, xvii. 10-14. XVII. 2, 3. Paul, as his manner was, went in unto them, and three Sabbath- days reasoned with them out of the Scriptures ; opening and alleging that Christ must needs have suffered, and risen again from the dead ; and that this Jesus, whom I preach unto you, is Christ. XVII. 2,3.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 219 Could Paul have shown by the testimony of the Old Testament Scriptures, " that Christ must needs have suffered '* % I think not. I can find no such testi- mony. Could he have shown that the Christ " must needs have risen again from the dead " 1 Cer- tainly not. The Old Testament says nothing of the kind. What, then, was the nature of Paul's argument and exposition % He had to deal with Jews prepossessed with the same erroneous views of the Old Testament writings as those which prevail among Christians at the present day. The assembly which he addressed in the syna- gogue of Thessalonica imagined, like the great ma- jority of Christians now, that those Old Testament writers called the Psalmists and the Prophets were supernaturally inspired, and of course infallible teach- ers of religious truth ; and when they found those writers describing the future Messiah as a splendid monarch and victorious soldier, they were satisfied that such alone was the Messiah they were to look for. But the poor Galilean peasant, Jesus, was no magnifi- cent prince, and no triumphant warrior. They turned a deaf ear to Paul, therefore, when he said, " This Jesus, whom I preach unto you, is Christ." Paul's task then was to show that it was Jit (eBec) that Christ should suffer, and rise again from the dead (rendered in our version, " that Christ must needs have suffered," Sec). It would not have been fit, if divine inspiration had in ancient times declared that the Mes- siah's course was to be one of brilliant earthly success and glory, as the Jews with whom Paul was reasoning, in consequence of their erroneous estimate of the au- thority of the Psalmists and Prophets, believed. It was necessary for him to show them their error in this 220 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XVII. 11. respect. Before they could recognize the Messiah in an obscure sufferer, like Jesus of Nazareth, it was necessary for them to be satisfied that the writers, from whom they had derived conceptions of the Messiah so inconsistent with that supposition, were not authorita- tive guides. This, I have no doubt, was the view which Paul was " opening," when " three Sabbath- days he reasoned with them out of the Scriptures." " This Jesus, whom I preach unto you, is the Christ," Paul said, notwithstanding he has suffered, and been put to a malefactor's death. " It is fit," — there is nothing unsuitable or incredible in the fact, — that he should " have suffered, and risen again from the dead " to fulfil his office. If you should rely on the Psalmists and Prophets as infallible oracles on the subject, you would, it is true, conclude that it was not fit. For such is not their representation. But their representation, so far as as it differs from, or adds to, the original Mosaic revelation on which it is founded (Deut. xviii. 15), is of no authority to determine your belief. What is " fit " in itself is not less so by reason of any thing that they have said, for they are not au- thoritative guides upon that question. And he " rea- soned out of the Scriptures, opening" and expound- ing them in maintenance of this view. XVII. 11. They received the word with all readiness of mind, and searched the Scriptures daily, whether these things were so. The investigation which occupied the Bereans, I understand to have been the same in which I have endeavored to aid the readers of these comments, and of my work on the Old Testament ; namely, to ascertain the authority and sense of different parts of the Jew- ish Scriptures, and their bearing on the mission and XXIV. 14, 15.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 221 office of Jesus, and on the Christian revelation in general. XVIII. 18. Having shorn his head in Cenchrea ; for he had a vow. See Numb. vi. 1 - 21 ; and comp. Acts xxi. 23, 24, 26 ; " Lectures," &c, Vol. I. pp. 330 - 332. XVIII. 28. He mightily convinced the Jews, and that publicly, showing by the Scriptures that Jesus was Christ. The argument used by Apollos I understand to have been of the same tenor as that which I have above (pp. 218-220) ascribed to Paul. XXI. 25. As touching the Gentiles which believe, we have written and concluded that they observe no such thing, save only that they keep themselves from things offered to idols, and from blood, and from strangled, and from fornication. See above, p. 218. XXIII. 5. It is written, " Thou shalt not speak evil of the ruler of thy people." Comp. Exod. xxii. 28. XXIV. 14, 15. This I confess unto thee, that after the way which they call heresy, so worship I the God of my fathers, believing all things which are written in the Law and in the Prophets ; and have hope towards God, which they themselves also allow, that there shall be a resurrection of the dead, both of the just and unjust. Paul said that he not only agreed with the Phari- 19* 222 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XXVI. 22, 23. sees in receiving the doctrine of the resurrection, which the Sadducees rejected (Acts xxiii. 8), but that he also believed in the Prophets as well as the Law ; — though he believed in Law and Prophets not ac- cording to the current Jewish opinions of their au- thority and sense, but according to a construction of his own and of his fellow-Christians ; " after the way which " the Jews called " heresy." XXVI. 22, 23. I continue unto this day, witnessing both to small and great, saying none other things than those which the Prophets and Moses did say should come ; that Christ should suffer, and that he should be the first that should rise from the dead, and should show light unto the people, and to the Gentiles. Moses had said (Deut. xviii. 15) that a prophet, called in later times the Christ, should " show light unto the people" and the Prophets (in unison with the promises to the patriarchs, Gen. xii. 3, xviii. 18, xxii. 18, xxvi. 4, xxviii. 14) had added (Is. ix. 2, lx. 1 - 3, et al. h. m.), that he should enlighten " the Gentiles." But (independently of the question whether either of them had in any way left it on record " that Christ should suffer ") certain it is that no such declaration as that he " should rise from the dead, and show light unto the people," &c, is to be found in their writings. It is merely by a mistranslation of his words, that Paul is made responsible for that erroneous assertion. The particle (el, if) represented here by " that " (" that Christ should suffer, and that he should be the first," &c.), will, it is true, in a peculiar Attic construction, bear that rendering, though the occasions for it are in- frequent. Buttman says (" Grammar," § 149), "When el follows Oav/uba^co [J ivonder~], and some other verbs expressing emotions of the mind, it ought strictly to XXVI. 22, 23.] ACTS OF THE APOSTLES. 223 signify if, when, and to be used merely of things which are uncertain ; e. g. c if or ivhen thou dost not per- ceive this, I wonder at it.' The Attic custom, how- ever, of avoiding a tone of decision in discourse, has been the occasion that el is used of things not only highly probable, but even entirely certain ; and conse- quently stands for ore [that]" Sec. There are a few New Testament examples of this use. (Comp. Mark xv. 44 ; Acts xxvi. 8 ; 2 Cor. xi. 15 ; 1 John iii. 13.) But * testifying " (fiapTvpov/xevos), the word prefixed in the present instance, is a word apparently as far as possi- ble out of the range of those verbs expressive of "emotion" which admit this peculiar translation of the particle after them. But the correct interpretation of the passage does not mainly turn on the rendering of this conjunction. Indeed, understand the words " when I say " before " that," and the true sense will be sufficiently ex- pressed. Another word in the sentence requires more particular remark. It is that rendered " other than " (e/e-ro?). It is often equivalent, as our translators here understood it to be, to except, beside, additional to. But such is not precisely its primitive meaning. Derived from the preposition (e/e) which means " from," it sig- nifies literally out of, without, outside. (Comp. Matt, xxiii. 26 ; 1 Cor. vi. 18 ; 2 Cor. xii. 2, 3.) That which is without is strange, foreign, alien. (1 Cor. v. 12, 13 ; Col. iv. 5 ; 1 Tim. iii. 7.) Sophocles (" Antigone," v. 330) has this sense of the word (e/ero? eXirlSo^, for contrary to expectation). So I understand Paul to use it. My doctrine, he says, concerning the Christ as a universal enlightener is not foreign, alien, contrary, to the doctrine of our ancient Scriptures. So that, in short, I understand his declaration to be to this effect : "When I proclaim a Christ, the enlight- 224 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE ACTS, &o. [XXVIII. 23. ener of Jews and Gentiles, I testify nothing foreign, nothing opposed, to what " the Prophets and Moses did say should come," even if [or, when I declare that] the Christ whom I preach is a sufferer, and was first to rise from the dead, and then " to show light," &c. Agrippa, and the Jews about his tribunal, had no notion of a suffering, dying, and risen Messiah. Paul declares that the idea of the Messiah which they en- tertained, so far as it was of one who, as Moses and the Prophets had declared, should " show light unto the people and to the Gentiles," was his own also, and that he in no way contradicted it, nor declared any thing inconsistent with it, when he further averred that it was God's will that the Messiah should first suffer, die, and rise, as Jesus had done. XXVIII. 23. There came many to him into his lodging ; to whom he ex- pounded and testified the kingdom of God, persuading them concerning Jesus, both out of the Law of Moses, and out of the Prophets, from morning till evening. See above, pp. 161 - 164, 208, 209. XXVIII. 25 - 27. When they agreed not among themselves they departed, after that Paul had spoken one word, " Well spake the Holy Ghost by Esaias the prophet unto our fathers, saying, l Go unto this people and say, Hearing ye shall hear, and shall not un- derstand ; and seeing ye shall see, and not perceive : for the heart of this people is waxed gross, and their ears are dull of hearing, and their eyes have they closed ; lest they should see with their eyes, and hear with their ears, and understand with their heart, and should be converted, and I should heal them.' " See above, pp. 80, 81. PART II. APOSTOLICAL EPISTLES. SECTION I. EPISTLE OF PAUL TO THE KOMANS. I. 6, 7. The called of Jesus Christ ; beloved of God, called to be saints. The Epistles of Paul, especially the controversial parts, abound in the use of a vocabulary drawn from the Old Testament, and requiring a reference to its original use in that collection of writings, in order to a correct interpretation of it where it occurs in the Christian Scriptures. Himself a Jew, like the rest of the Apostles, St. Paul of course employed words agreeably to Jewish usage. Especially when he dis- cussed questions raised by Jews out of the technical phraseology of their sacred writings, it was unavoidable that he should use that phraseology in its accepted technical sense. The family of Abraham occupied a peculiar position, from the time when they were selected by Divine wis- dom to be recipients of revelations of religious truth. That position was expressed in the Old Testament by various titles and epithets. They were entitled in very numerous passages, " the Congregation of the Lord " (e. g. Numb. xvi. 3, xxvii. 17, xxxi. 16 ; Deut. xxiii. 3 ; Josh. xxii. 17 ; 1 Chron. xxviii. 8 ; Mic. ii. 5) ; a word equivalent to Church As God had invited them to the possession of a true 226 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 6, 7. theology, and the enjoyment of corresponding privi- leges, they were said to be his called. " Hearken unto me, O Jacob, and Israel, my called." (Is. xlviii. 12 ; comp. xli. 9, li. 2 ; Hos. xi. 1.) The Israelites collectively, by reason of this relation, were God's chosen, or what is the same thing, his elect. " Ye seed of Israel, his servant ; ye children of Jacob, his chosen ones." (1 Chron. xvi. 13.) " For Jacob my servant's sake, and Israel mine elect." (Is. xlv. 4 ; comp. Dent. iv. 37, vii. 6, x. 15 ; 1 Kings iii. 8 ; Ps. xxxiii. 12, cv. 6, 43, cvi. 5, cxxxv. 4 ; Is. xli. 8, 9, xliii. 20, xliv. 1, 2; Ezek. xx. 5.) They were his saved, or delivered (Deut. xxxiii. 29) ; his purchased (Exod. xv. 16); his redeemed (2 Sam. vii. 23) ; his ransomed (Is. xxxv. 10, li. 10). They were his children (Deut. xiv. 1) ; his sons (Is. xliii. 6) ; his people (Exod. v. 1); his inheritance (Deut. ix. 26) ; his servants (Lev. xxv. 55) ; his beloved (Jer. xii. 7) ; his holy ones, or saints (Deut. vii. 6 ; Ps. cxlviii. 14; 1 Mac. i. 46). These expressions, and others of similar tenor, it is to be carefully remembered, have no reference what- ever to the particular character or position of indi- viduals. They relate to the people of Israel collec- tively, comprising, as it did, characters of every degree of goodness and wickedness, from Moses to Nadab, from Elijah to Jezebel. They relate to that people collectively as the Church of God ; in other words, as that portion of mankind on whom God had bestowed the privileges of a revealed religion. All Gentiles, indiscriminately, are " strangers," " aliens," " afar off," " not a people." All Jews, good or bad, on account of the nation's having the oracles of God in its keeping, are comprehended in the class of the " called," the " elect," the " purchased, " the household," and so on. I. 6, 7.J EPISTLE TO THE KOMANS. 227 This is plainly the case in respect to those titles which to our minds suggest most naturally something of a moral significance. To the whole congregation of the descendants of Jacob it is said, " Thou art an holy people" (Deut. vii. 6, xxvi. 19, xxviii. 9). "He ex- alteth," says the Psalmist (cxlviii. 14), " the praise of all his saints " ; an honorable title ; and to whom applied % He explains : " the praise of all his saints, even of the children of Israel." Even the phrase chil- dren of God, in this connection, implies no favorable testimony in respect to character ; for he is himself represented as saying (Is. i. 2), "I have nourished and brought up children, and they have rebelled against me." Herein we have a key to the sense of a large por- tion of the Apostolical Epistles of the New Testament. Certain expressions were in common use with the Jew- ish writers before our Saviour's time, and consequently in the common colloquial use of the Jews in his time, when they spoke of the subjects to which the ancient writers had applied those expressions. Those expres- sions had been applied to the Jewish nation as a body, — not to single persons, nor with any reference to moral desert. They had denoted no more nor less than the state of religious privilege which the Jewish nation, as such, enjoyed, in being the possessors of a revelation with its attendant distinctions and advan- tages ; — in short, as being the covenant people, the visible Church of God. We know from the Acts of the Apostles (x. 1 -xi. 18, xv. 1 - 31), that, at an early period of the preaching of Christianity, the question began to be moved, whether the descendants of Abra- ham were still to continue what they had been, — the only covenant people, the exclusive visible Church, of God, — or whether Gentiles were now to be permitted 228 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 17. to share their privileges. It was natural — not to say unavoidable — that the question should be discussed by Jews in the use of those terms by which Jews had been accustomed to designate their superiority ; — un- avoidable, because this was their vocabulary conse- crated to that use, and they had no other. In short, the great dispute of the infant Church, whether the benefits of the Jewish Messiah's mission were designed for Jews only, or for Gentiles also, was, according to the phraseology of the time, a dispute whether Jews were still to possess exclusively, or henceforward to share with Gentiles, a right to the titles of a called, elect, saved, redeemed people, and such like. It is in reference to that controversy, which he treats at large in his Epistle to the Romans, that Paul, taking, as he always did, the liberal side, addresses himself, in the beginning of that Epistle, to the whole Church of Rome alike, composed of both Jewish and Pagan con- verts, as " the called of Jesus Christ," and the " beloved of God." As he viewed the case, all who gave " obe- dience to the faith among all nations " (i. 5) were " the called of Jesus Christ " (6), as much as the Jews had been the called of Moses. As much as the Jewish nation had formerly been, so much all, Jews or Gen- tiles, who were now willing to accept the Gospel of Jesus as the message of God, were " beloved of God, called to be saints " (7). I. 17. Therein is the righteousness of God revealed from faith to faith ; as it is written, " The just by faith shall live." In the latter clause of this verse (in which, after Griesbach, I adopt the verbal arrangement necessary to bring out the Apostle's meaning), language used by an ancient writer (Hab. ii. 4) in a different sense and I. 17.] EPISTLE TO THE EOMANS. 229 application (comp. " Lectures," &c, Vol. III. p. 289) is employed by way of accommodation to St. Paul's doctrine, which it well expresses. The sense of the for- mer clause, I think, is correctly represented in this paraphrase : " In the Gospel of Christ God's method of justification is revealed as resting upon faith from first to last." Or it may be rendered : " Therein, for the foundation of faith, God's method of justification by faith is revealed." The subject of justification by faith, so much dis- cussed in the Epistles of Paul, particularly in those to the Romans and Galatians, is here introduced. The doctrine is more fully and exactly set forth in passages a little further on, where it is said, " A man is justified by faith without the deeds of the law" (iii. 28 ; comp. 20, 22, iv. 2) ; and again (iv. 5 ; comp. Gal. ii. 16), " To him that worketh not, but believeth on him that justifieth the ungodly, his faith is counted for righteousness [rather, for justification^' What is the meaning of these propositions % It de- pends on the signification of the terms, "justification," "faith," and "works" or "deeds of the law." The strictly orthodox sense (so called) of the doctrine, I may exemplify in the definitions of the Westminster Catechism and Confession, according to which, — " Justification is an act of God's free grace unto sinners, in which he pardoneth all their sin, accepteth and accounteth their persons righteous in his sight, not for any thing wrought in them, or done by them, but only for the perfect obedience and full satisfaction of Christ, by God imputed to them, and received by faith alone." (" Larger Catechism," Quest. 70.) " Justifying faith is a saving grace, wrought in the heart of a sinner by the spirit and word of God, whereby he, being convinced of his sin and misery, 20 230 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 17. and of the disability of himself and all other creatures to recover him out of his lost condition, not only assenteth to the truth of the promise of the Gospel, but receiveth and resteth upon Christ and his right- eousness therein held forth, for pardon of sin, and for the accepting and accounting of his person righteous in the sight of God for salvation." (Ibid. Quest. 72.) " Good works are only such as God hath commanded in his holy word, and not such as, without the warrant thereof, are devised by men, out of blind zeal, or upon any pretence of good intention. These good works, done in obedience to God's commandments, are the fruits and evidences of a true and lively faith, and by them believers manifest their thankfulness, strengthen their assurance, edify their brethren, adorn the profes- sion of the Gospel, stop the mouths of adversaries, and glorify God." (" Confession," &c., chap. xvi. §§ 1, 2.) In short, good works are acts of Christian obedi- ence, from Christian principles and motives. That which may perhaps be regarded as the prevail- ing scheme among liberal commentators of the present day represents justification as meaning " absolution from sin, and assurance of the heavenly happiness " ; faith, " the whole temper and character of a Christian " ; and works, or deeds of the law, " observance of the Jewish ritual." (Comp. " Test. Nov. Hammond, et Cler." ad Horn. iii. 4 ; Locke, " Paraphrase and Notes," &c. on Rom. iv. 25.) And on this basis the proposi- tion will signify : " A man obtains assurance of final salvation, not in consequence of observing the cere- monies of the Jewish Law, but of having become pos- sessed of the Christian spirit and character." Objections to this exposition are, — 1. That it ascribes an unauthorized sense to the word faith ; a sense not justified by its etymology, I. 17.] EPISTLE TO THE KOMANS. 231 nor (as I think) by the practice of the sacred writers, Jewish or Christian, but merely devised to meet a sup- posed exigency. " Faith in Jesus Christ " means belief that Jesus is the Christ. It is that act of the mind by which the mind recognizes Jesus in the character of the Messiah. I know what " dispositions of the heart " means, but the " faith of the heart," of which I some- times hear from the pulpit, has no more meaning for me than the passions, affections, or appetites of the understanding. It is true that we read, " With the heart man believed unto righteousness." (Rom. x. 10.) But it is a Jew who uses the language ; and in the usage of his nation the heart (2y) means not more the seat of the affections, than the mind or understanding. (Comp. Judg. xvi. 17; 1 Kings x. 2, 24 ; 1 Chron. xxix. 18 ; Job ix. 4, xii. 3, xxxiv. 10, xxxvi. 5 ; Pro v. vii. 7, ix. 4 ; Is. vi. 10, x. 7.) 2. That it unjustifiably limits the sense of the word works, in making it refer to the Jewish Law, instead of standing for universal religious obedience. (Comp. Rom. iv. 5, ix. 11 ; Tit. iii. 3-5.) 3. That it represents justification as a thing future to Christians, whereas the Apostle speaks of it as a thing passed. (Comp. Rom. v. 1, 9 ; 1 Cor. vi. 11 ; Tit. iii. 7.) Nor can it be shown that the words justifica- tion wad justify, or their equivalents in Greek, ever, in the New Testament, denote admittance to, or assurance of, final salvation. I do not deny that they are used in connections where final salvation is the subject (as, perhaps, in Rom. ii. 13), but that they ever them- selves express that sense. The distinction between sense and signification is a familiar one. 4. That it represents Paul as defending an insignifi- cant proposition ; for whoever should regard the works of the Jewish Law as obligatory, would be prompted 232 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 17. to perform them by that very principle of obedience assumed to be denoted by the word faith. In such a case the works and the faith which Paul places in such precise opposition would coincide. I take faith and works in their common acceptation, understanding, by the one, belief and by the other, obedience in general ; and justification I interpret as importing admission to the present privileges of the Christian community ; in other words, admission into the visible Church, the society of Christians, the com- pany of the covenant people of God. On this basis, the proposition will read as follows : — A man is in- troduced into the Christian community simply on the condition of recognizing the authority of Jesus, its head, and not on any condition of previous obedience rendered by him, of whatever kind. The doctrine here expressed, more largely stated, will be this : — Christianity freely offers its enlighten- ing and sanctifying influences to whosoever will avail himself of them. He who believes that it is from God, is in a condition to avail himself of them, which no person who does not believe can be, from the nature of the case. All who are ready to be benefited by it, then, it adopts. No such person does it reject, on ac- count of previous disobedience, greater or less. Every believer in its divine original it receives, so far as to regard him as a member of the visible Church, free to enjoy and use all the privileges it holds out, which privileges he then remains at liberty to use or misuse at his option and his peril ; and according to his use or abuse of them will be his final lot. According to this view, St. Paul meets the plea of the Jewish converts — viz. that in order to be a member of the Christian community, which, in their apprehen- sion, was but an improved continuation of the Jewish, I. 17.] EPISTLE TO THE EOMANS. 233 it was necessary first to comply with the Jewish ritual — by declaring that, so far from any particular form of works (" deeds of the law ") being requisite for initiation, no performance of works whatever, no past obedience, was the ground of admission to the name and opportunities of discipleship. (Comp. Acts viii. 36, 37.) This rendering of the proposition in question, be- sides being in striking accordance with the liberal spirit of Christianity, has the advantage of harmoniz- ing with our knowledge of the state of the controversy in the Apostolic age throughout, and with the uniform tenor of St. Paul's reasonings, illustrations, and phrase- ology, when, in different places, he presents the argu- ment. Whatever difficulty belongs to it consists in finding authority for explaining the words justify and justification in the manner proposed. For the other two words are taken in their plainest and commonest sense. Accordingly, I inquire what is the sense of the words justify and justification in the technical use of Scrip- ture. And the inquiry brings me to this conclusion ; that they belong to that class of terms, lately com- mented on (see pp. 225 - 228), which relate to recep- tion into the visible Christian Church. A man is justi- fied when he becomes a member of the company of believers ; and his justification is his transfer into that new position. Words are arbitrary signs. Usage fixes their sense, and the satisfactory way to ascertain their sense is to observe their use. But I will premise an etymological view of the words in question, which possibly may de- serve some attention, as accounting for their use. The Greek words (Slkcuoco and hucaioavvr)) rendered in our version of the New Testament justify and right- eousness , occur frequently in the Septuagint translation of the Old Testament, from which the Evangelists and 20* 234 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 17. Apostles have borrowed much of their phraseology. In the Septuagint they correspond respectively to a Hebrew verb and Hebrew nouns, all from one root (pHVC?, P*TV> an( ^ ^pIV)- Accordingly, by ascertain- ing the meaning of these Hebrew words, we ascertain the sense which the corresponding Greek words had in Hellenistic use ; that is, in the use of the Septu- agint version and the New Testament. Now the Hebrew words are derivatives from a root (p"!V)» ^ ne primitive meaning of which appears to be, in the infinitive, to be straight, or erect In the Hiphil form, the verb will of course mean to cause to be erect or to set up, and the noun, an erect posture. But in a sec- ondary sense of the word, akin to that by which in English we use uprightness and rectitude for a moral quality, the radical verb (pIV) ^ s use( ^ m Hebrew for he stood morally erect, or he was innocent ; and its Hiphil form accordingly denotes to cause or esteem a person to be morally erect or innocent, that is, to justify a per- son, and the derived noun stands for moral erectness or uprightness, as well as for the condition of being physi- cally upright. But there is clearly no reason for deserting^ the primitive meaning of a word in a given case, when the secondary will not in that case give us so good a sense. Let us keep to the primitive sense in this instance, and see whither it will lead us. On the text, " Abraham believed God, and it was counted unto him for right- eousness " (Gen. xv. 6), St. Paul founds much of the argument in his Epistles to the Romans and Galatians, thus -directing attention to it as the source of his pe- culiar phraseology. If, instead of rendering the last word (np°lV) righteousness, we give it the^ primitive meaning of a setting up, or an establishment, we obtain a sense which, besides being more literal, much better I. 17.] EPISTLE TO THE ROMANS. 235 suits the context. We shall then understand the Old Testament writer as saying, that Abraham's belief was counted to him, not for righteousness •, or personal merit (which it is not directly to his purpose to speak of), but for the ground of his being set up, the ground of his establishment, as the head of the covenant people of God. The text, thus understood, is precisely to the sacred writer's purpose, for he is treating of the origin of the privileges possessed by the Jews in that character. And, on this construction, it is also emi- nently to the Apostle's purpose to quote the text, in the connection in which his quotation of it occurs ; his object being to show that the ground of the estab- lishment of Christians in the character of God's cove- nant people was the same ground — namely, that of faith — on which had rested Abraham's previous es- tablishment in the same relation. Now if we ought to adopt this sense for the Hebrew word (npny) in the Old Testament passage just com- mented on, we must (if we admit the translation into Greek to be faithful in this instance) attribute the same sense to the corresponding Greek word (Sikcuoo-vvt)) in the Septuagint version. And if, in the Septuagint version, the Greek noun is used to denote an establish- ment in the condition of God's peculiar people, God's Church, it further follows that the same sense naturally attaches to the word when it occurs in the same con- nection in the New Testament. The verb (Bitccuoco), the root of the noun in question, will then also mean to establish in this relation. And the representation of Paul, in such passages, is elucidated by etymological analysis. I should have less confidence in an argument belong- ing to Hebrew philology, and going to attach to a word a sense not set down in the lexicons (natural as 236 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 17. the derivation seems to me), but that I think it strongly corroborated by a comparison of two other passages of the Old Testament. In a Psalm we read, " Then stood up Phinehas, and executed judgment, and so the plague was stayed ; and that was counted unto him for righteousness (HD*1V/) mi t° all generations for evermore." (Ps. cvi. 30, 31.) This refers to a transac- tion recorded in the history. (Numb. xxv. 11-13.) We turn to it, and what do we find 1 An account of the establishment of Phinehas and his family in the hereditary dignity of the office of high-priest, or, as it is there expressed, of his having, " and his seed after him," God's " covenant of peace," " even the covenant of an everlasting priesthood." Phinehas's act " was counted unto him for righteousness unto all genera- tions for evermore," — that is, for establishment in a permanent transmissible pontificate. The words " unto all generations," &c. have no sense, without torture, on the interpretation which supposes a personal quali- ty of Phinehas to be referred to under the name of his "righteousness." As Phinehas's devout zeal was counted to him for the establishment of himself and his posterity in the sacerdotal office, so Abraham's faith was counted to him for establishment and confir- mation of himself and his descendants in the privi- leges of God's people, adopted for the reception of his Law ; and the belief of Christians (so Paul asserts) was counted to them in like manner for a like estab- lishment in a church state. It must be superfluous to say, that I by no means propose, as a conclusion from the above remarks, to change the long-accustomed nomenclature on this sub- ject, by substituting the word establishment, or any other, for the technical justification to which we are used. All technical words are but jargon as long I. 17.] EPISTLE TO THE KOMANS. 237 as they are new, and it is better to attempt to define and fix the sense of an old one, than to supersede it. I have but aimed to trace a process of thought by which phraseology of an ancient language has come to be used in a very peculiar and strictly technical sense, — a sense by no means represented by our word justification interpreted by its common use. And now, though I have ventured to submit this philological in- vestigation, I am quite content to throw it all aside, and reach the same result by another process. Whether or not the word rendered justify sometimes means to es- tablish, unquestionably it often means to deliver, set free, redeem.. It has been sufficiently shown (p. 226) that the words salvation, redemption, and others equivalent, denote, in frequent Scriptural use, the transfer from the condition of " aliens," " strangers," " not a people," &c. (to use the Jewish vocabulary appropriated to the case), to the condition of God's " children," " inheritance," and " saints " ; — that is, the condition of members of God's visible Church, entitled to the use of its means of edification. If, then, it further appears that the Greek or Hebrew word rendered righteousness or justification is used in Scripture as convertible with those translated deliverance, redemption, &c. when the latter are employed in their most unrestricted sense, of rescue from any evil whatever, we may reasonably con- clude that it is convertible with them also when used in this specific technical application. Now, that those Greek and Hebrew words are used as equivalent to those which stand for " deliverance," &c. in a general sense, — without consideration of the nature of the evil delivered from, — no careful reader of Scripture can fail to have observed. (See Acts xiii. 39 ; Rom. vi. 7 ; comp. Ps. lxxi. 15, iv. 1, xxiv. 5, li. 14, xcviii. 2; Is. xli. 10, xlv. 8, 24, xlvi. 13, xlviii. 18, li. 5, lvi. 1, lviii. 8, lxii. 1, 2; Dan. viii. 14.) 238 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 17. There is no more satisfactory way to ascertain the sense of words used by Christians, in the Apostolic age, in the discussion of questions growing out of Jewish opinions, than to observe what sense the words had in Jewish writings of the same period, if there are any such to which we may have access. The apocryphal book of the Wisdom of Solomon lends important confirmation to the view which I have taken of the phraseology now under investigation. Its au- thor appears to have lived not far from the time of St. Paul, if he was not St. Paul's contemporary. (" Lec- tures," &c., Vol. IV. pp. 351, 352.) The Jewish com- munity and church, as such, without regard to the moral condition of the whole or a part, he designates as " the righteous " (see Wisdom x. 15 - 20), as well as " the saints" (xviii. 1, 5). " Of thy people," he says, referring to the exodus from Egypt, " was accepted the salvation of the righteous, and destruction of the enemies" (xviii. 7). The qualification, " the righteous," is clearly intended to denote the Jewish people at large, without regard to the moral attributes of all or any. The point is put beyond doubt by a later verse. " The tasting of death touched the righteous also, and there was a destruction of the multitude in the wilderness " (xviii. 20). Who were those " righteous " whom " the tasting of death touched " % We turn to the history (Numb, xvi.), and we find that they were the wicked men who experienced a severe visitation of the Divine displeasure for their share in the conspiracy of Korah and his company. The opinion that the words on which I am com- menting should always be taken to denote a moral quality, and never to import a mere external condition or change, can no more be maintained on the less safe ground of etymological theory, than on the ground of I. 17.] EPISTLE TO THE KOMANS. 239 fact and usage. More plausibly might it be argued from etymology, that, between the two simplest senses of the verb in question, in the different languages, — namely, to make just, on the one hand, and to hold just, or to clear, on the other, — the former ought always to be preferred. But in fact this would give a render- ing which according to use, which settles such things, the Hebrew verb will scarcely bear (possibly Isaiah liii. 11 may be an instance), and the Greek and Eng- lish verb not at all. It so happens, that, between the two meanings of made just, and held just, acquitted (to which latter meaning the sense of deliverance in general is analogous, so that the same word would naturally come to be used for both), use, which is the sovereign arbiter, has given the one to the verb, and the other, prevailingly, to the noun derived from it; so that by justify (p^V-D? Sifcatoco) we mean, not to make just, but to hold just ; while, on the contrary, by righteousness (p^V? ^icaioavvrf) we mean, not the state of him who is held just (that is acquittal, deliverance), but the state of him who is made just (that is, inno- cence, purity, uprightness). Undoubtedly such is the classical use of the Greek noun. But it is clear that the derivation is at least equally in favor of the other sense, which my argument demands, and I have before shown that the Scripture use approves that sense. The scheme of interpretation which I maintain may be thought liable to the objection of requiring two quite different senses to be put upon the w T ord justify, when occurring in the same argument as conducted by two different New Testament writers ; and this was the opinion of John Taylor, whose otherwise judicious treatise upon this subject was formerly held in great consideration. He supposed (" Key to the Apostolic Writings," Chaps. XIL, XVII.) that it was necessary to 240 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 17. distinguish between what he called a " first " and a " full and final " justification. By the " first justifi- cation " he understood that spoken of by St. Paul, namely, admission to the present privileges of believ- ers ; by the " full and final," an admission to heavenly rewards, treated of in the Epistle of James. I cannot admit that there is any good ground for this distinc- tion. In my opinion, the word is used by both writ- ers in the sense in which I have argued that it is used by Paul. The writer of the Epistle of James does not affirm that obedience (works), and not faith, is the ground and condition of that justification of which he speaks ; in which case, it is true, we should have to understand him either as contradicting Paul, or as treating of some other justification. His aim is to show how that faith is to be manifested and discerned, which, whenever it exists in an individual, is, as Paul says, the ground of that individual's justification, or admission among Christians, — how that justifying faith, if possessed, will be made known and evinced. And he says it is to be made known and proved, not by professions merely, but by corresponding actions ; and that thus it was that the justifying faith of Abra- ham and others was in fact made known. (James ii. 14 -26.) - His theme is : If actions contradict the wordy profession of that faith, which, if it existed, would alone justify, or entitle its possessor to a Christian welcome, then it is to be held not to exist, and the ground of justification fails. " Faith without works is dead " ; that is, it is no faith at all. None of the virtue of faith resides in a pretended faith of that description. Faith ? No, it is not faith. It is pre- tence. — And this is unquestionable, and is no incon- sistency with the doctrine of Paul, supposing both writers to have meant the same thing by justification. I. 17.] EPISTLE TO THE ROMANS. 241 If I construe the language in James's Epistle correctly, the technical use of the word justify in the New Tes- tament is uniform. Instead of remarking specially on every text, which would involve much repetition, I invite the reader to try the correctness of the exposition I have been defending, by reading in connection the first chap- ters of the Epistle to the Romans, with a substitution of justification, or method of justification, for righteous- ness,* and understanding justify and justification as having the reference which I have pointed out, to the great deliverance from Gentile darkness to the light of revealed truth. He will find, if I mistake not, that what may have hitherto perplexed him is a connected and cogent affirmative argument on the question, wheth- er Gentiles, in consequence of merely believing in the Messiah, might be received on an equal footing with Israelites into the community endowed by the Divine mercy with the privileges of a revealed religion ; — the great question this of the Apostolic times, and the question to which the most careless reader cannot fail to see that a great part of the Apostle's reasoning cer- tainly relates, and that, too, the part in which the words under consideration constantly occur. St. Paul first meets in this Epistle the Jewish claim to be ex- clusively the recognized people of God, by affirming that Jews and Gentiles are alike guilty before him, so that neither can make that claim on any ground of merit. This topic is pressed in the first three chapters, after which he argues, in the fourth, that Abraham, from whom, as by inheritance, his descendants sup- posed their privilege to be derived, himself obtained it * Righteousness, in ii. 26, is on every account a false translation, and does not enter into the argument. Here, as in v. 18, the word is not 6V Kaiocrvpr), nor SiKauocri?, but SiKatco/^a. 21 242 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [II. 24. in the same manner in which Gentile converts had sought it now, — that is, by belief. Thus he estab- lishes the truth, that the mere faith of Gentiles is " counted to them for righteousness," — for justifica- tion ; that no other condition of admittance into the Christian community is imposed, except a belief in Jesus, its head. So he asserts against narrow-minded Jews the most catholic principles in relation to the name and pre- rogatives of discipleship. He teaches that " God is no respecter of persons " ; that neither descent from Abraham, nor ancient privileges attached to that line- age, constitute, under the Christian dispensation, any exclusive title to any expressions of his gracious re- gard ; that, the use of the Jewish peculiarity having ceased, — a use in which, though the Jews supposed otherwise, the ultimate benefit of all mankind had been as much contemplated as their own, — it was thenceforth abolished, and all, of whatever race, were admitted to the full advantages of Divine revelation, who, by belief in him through whom the revelation was made, were rendered capable of appropriating its advantages. Faith is the condition, and the sole con- dition, of the enjoyment of the privileges offered by the Gospel. In the nature of things, those privileges cannot be enjoyed by any who do not believe in the divine authority of their giver ; and from no one who does believe in it, and who thus becomes receptive of them, does the Divine mercy permit them to be withheld. II. 24. The name of God is blasphemed among the Gentiles through you, as it is written. The reference may be to expressions of Isaiah (lii. 5) and of Ezekiel (xxxvi. 20, 23). III. 9-22.] EPISTLE TO THE ROMANS. 243 III. 4. Let God be true, but every man a liar ; as it is written, " That thou mightest be justified in thy sayings, and mightest over- come when thou art judged." The words are found in one of the Psalms (li. 4). They are adopted simply as well expressing the senti- ment which Paul was urging on his own part. III. 9-22. We have before proved both Jews and Gentiles, that they are all under sin ; as it is written, " There is none righteous, no, not one : there is none that understandeth, there is none that seeketh after God. They are all gone out of the way, they are together become unprofitable ; there is none that doeth good, no, not one. Their throat is an open sepulchre ; with their tongues they have used deceit ; the poison of asps is under their lips ; whose mouth is full of cursing and bitterness. Their feet are swift to shed blood ; destruction and misery are in their ways ; and the way of peace have they not known : there is no fear of God before their eyes." Now we know that what things soever the Law saith, it saith to them who are under the Law ; that every mouth may be stopped, and all the world may become guilty before God. Therefore by the deeds of the Law there shall no flesh be justified in his sight : for by the Law is the knowledge of sin. But now the righteousness of God without the Law is manifested, being witnessed by the Law and the Prophets ; even the righteous- ness of God which is by faith of Jesus Christ unto all, and upon all them that believe. The passages here quoted occur in the Psalms and Prophets. (Ps. xiv. 3, liii. 2, 3, v, 9, cxl. 3, x. 7 ; Jer. iv. 22 ; Ps. xxxvi. 1 ; Is. lix. 7, 8.) They contain ani- madversions, by the writers of those books, on the moral delinquency of the men of their own nation and times. The phrase "the Law" (19) is used, as sometimes elsewhere (see John x. 34, xii. 34), for the Old Testament Scriptures in general. Paul's argument is, that, on the ground of moral desert, the Jews have 244 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [III. 24. no claim above the Gentiles to the possession of God's gift in Christianity. To prove this, he quotes several reproving sentences from their ancient writers ; and he argues that those animadversions, found in " the Law," must be understood as having been applied to Jews, because " whatsoever things the Law saith, it saith to them that are under the Law." It does not speak for those who have it not. It does not contain descriptions of those with whom it has no concern, and who will not read it. — The last period of the passage under our notice, I would paraphrase as fol- lows : " Now is manifested [that is, in the Gospel] God's method of justification independent of the Law, a method approved by the testimony of both Law and Prophets ; even that method of justification which rests upon mere belief in Jesus Christ, and extends its benefits to all who entertain that belief." God's justifying on the ground of faith alone was " witnessed by the Law " in a text (Gen. xv. 6) on which Paul is presently going to argue at length (Rom. iv. 1-25). And it was " witnessed by the Prophets," in such re- marks of theirs as he had just been quoting, showing, as they did, that, on the ground of desert, the Jews could set up no claim to an exclusive justification. III. 24. Being justified freely by his grace, through the redemption that is in Christ Jesus. The Greek original (airoXuTpcoa-^), like redemption, the English word which here represents it, means, in its primitive sense, to rescue by the payment of a price. But in the Scriptural use, the idea of a price, or equiv- alent, is often lost sight of, and the word denotes rescue, deliverance, in general, by whatever means obtained. Thus God is said to " redeem with a stretched-out III. 25.] EPISTLE TO THE KOMANS. 245 arm." (Exod. vi. 6 ; comp. Is. 1. 2 ; Deut. vii. 8, ix. 26 ; 1 Chron. xvii. 21.) " Through the redemption that is in Christ Jesus," through the deliverance which Jesus wrought, his disciples were brought, by God's free goodness, into a justified, a church, a covenant state. See above, pp. 225 - 242. III. 25. Whom God hath set forth to be a propitiation through faith in his blood, to declare his righteousness. For " a propitiation," I suppose we should read a mercy -seat. So the word (IXacrrripiov) is properly ren- dered in the only other place where it occurs in the New Testament (Heb. ix. 5). It had been used in this sense by the Septuagint translators in rendering the Hebrew rOSD (Exod.xxv. 17-22; comp. Lev. xvi. 13, and numerous other texts of that book ; Ezek. xliii. 14, 17, 20 ; Amos ix. 1). It was through the mercy-seat that God was approached, under the old dispensation ; so, in the new, he had now publicly set forth (jrpoeOero) Christ, as a mercy-seat, through which believers in Christ's death (" through faith in his blood") might approach him. It may be observed, however, that the words " through faith " are of doubt- ful authenticity. Omitting them, and accordingly reading the clause, " whom God hath set forth a mer- cy-seat in his blood," we shall understand the Apostle to represent Jesus as consecrated to that service by his own blood, as the mercy-seat of old was by the blood of a victim. (See Lev. xvi. 14.) By " righteousness," in the last clause, I understand method of justifi- cation. 21* 246 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [III. 28. III. 28. We conclude that a man is justified by faith, without the deeds of the Law. See above, pp. 228 - 242. IV. 2, 3. If Abraham were justified by works, he hath whereof to glory, but not before God. For what saith the Scripture ? " Abra- ham believed God, and it was counted unto him for right- eousness." The sense of the text may be expressed as follows, viz.: — If Abraham had been justified as a reward for his works, he might have had something to boast of. (Comp. ii. 17, iii. 27.) But no; it was not so, I call God to witness («\V ov, 7rpo? rov Oeov). For what does the Scripture say % It says, that Abraham believed God, and that belief, a state of mind in which there is no merit and no cause for self-complacency, was reck- oned to him as his ground of justification. (See above, pp. 234, 236, 241, 247.) IV. 6-8. Even as David also describeth the blessedness of the man unto whom God imputeth righteousness without works, saying, " Blessed are they whose iniquities are forgiven, and whose sins are covered. Blessed is the man to whom the Lord will not impute sin." The quotation is from a Psalm (xxxii. 1, 2). All that the Psalmist meant was to speak of the happiness of having one's sins forgiven. But the expression " the Lord will not impute sin " was so much to the purpose of the argument which the Apostle was hold- ing, to the effect that past sins would not exclude from that justification which was now offered to the believer in Christ, that he quotes them in an accommodation to that sentiment. V. 1, 2.] EPISTLE TO THE ROMANS. 247 IV. 9, 10. We say that faith was reckoned to Abraham for righteousness. How was it then reckoned ? when he was in circumcision, or in uncircumcision ? Not in circumcision, but in imcir- cumcision. The Jews of Paul's time imagined that observance of that rite, which was the seal of the ancient cove- nant, was a necessary preliminary to a place among the justified people of God. Paul tells them that so far was this from the truth, that Abraham himself, the father of their church and nation, was justified before he was circumcised (comp. Gen. xv. 6, xvii. 11, 24), — received into a covenant state, when he had only believed. IV. 17, 18. As it is written, I have made thee a father of many nations ; according to that which was spoken, So shall thy seed be. In obtaining justification through his belief, says the Apostle, Abraham became the precursor, not only of the Jews, his natural descendants, but of all, of whatever lineage, Jewish or Gentile, who, in this re- spect, should walk in his steps ; thus fulfilling, in an unexpected sense, those words which had spoken of him as the head of a numerous and a various line. V. 1,2. Being justified by faith, we have peace with God, through our Lord Jesus Christ, by whom also we have access by faith into this grace wherein we stand. "What was that " peace with God," of which the Apostle here speaks 1 It was the reconciliation with him which took place, when, by their faith in Jesus, the converts were transferred from the condition of " stran- 248 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [V. 12-19. gers," « aliens," " afar off," to that of God's " children," his " chosen," his " saints," &c. What does the Apos- tle mean by " this grace wherein we stand," and to which " we have access by faith " 1 Clearly, the privi- leges of Christian discipleship. The text strongly confirms the view presented above (pp. 225 - 242) of the doctrine of justification by faith. V. 12-19. Wherefore, as by one man sin entered into the world, and death by sin ; and so death passed upon all men, for that all have sinned ; (For until the Law sin was in the world : but sin is not imputed when there is no law. Nevertheless, death reigned from Adam to Moses, even over them that had not sinned after the similitude of Adam's transgression, who is the figure of him that was to come. But not as the offence, so also is the free gift. For if through the offence of one many- be dead, much more the grace of God, and the gift by grace, which is by one man, Jesus Christ, hath abounded unto many. And not as it was by one that sinned, so is the gift ; for the judgment was by one to condemnation, but the free gift is of many offences unto justification. For if by one man's of- fence death reigned by one ; much more they which receive abundance of grace, and of the gift of righteousness, shall reign in life by one, Jesus Christ :) therefore, as by the of- fence of one judgment came upon all men to condemnation ; even so by the righteousness of one the free gift came upon all men unto justification of life. For as by one man's dis- obedience many were made sinners, so by the obedience of one shall many be made righteous. Every considerate reader sees that, of themselves, these words convey no sense. They are a rude trans- lation of a passage to which it is quite plain that the translators did not themselves attach any clear mean- ing. It is a passage which greatly perplexes the in- terpreter, as well on account of its very elliptical char- acter, as on account of its dealing (like much of the rest of the Epistle) with the conceptions and terms of V. 12-19.] EPISTLE TO THE ROMANS. 249 a controversy long ago obsolete. The ideas which English readers are apt to suppose to be conveyed by the words, are ideas attached to those words in the technics of modern theological metaphysics. They are ideas not expressed in those words, and altogether unknown to St. Paul. I am not now composing a commentary on the New Testament, but only attempting to explain the references therein to the Old. The question raised, under this category, by the passage before us, is, what the writer meant by his reference therein to Adam ; and in par- ticular, whether he meant to say or imply that the ac- count in Genesis of Adam, and of his eating the for- bidden apple, was genuine history, and that that offence of his had some influence on the condition of the hu- man race, his posterity. In order to provide a reply to these questions, I find it necessary to set down a paraphrase of the whole passage, according to what appears to me, on the whole, to be its import. Let it be remembered, that the passage occurs in the midst of a long argument, drawn from various prem- ises, to show that the Jews were no better entitled than the Gentiles to justification , that is, to participate in the benefits of the Christian revelation. Justification through Jesus Christ, Paul maintains, was offered alike to every believer in him, of whatever race or past profession. The Gentiles could not claim the boon on any ground of merit, for they had been griev- ous sinners (i. 18 - 32). Nor could the Jews any more, for they had added to a like sinfulness the guilt of higher privileges abused (ii. 1 - 29) ; a fact which their own sages in every age had testified against them (iii. 1 - 20). So all, Jew and Gentile alike, must be content to receive the Gospel gratuitously, on no other 250 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [V. 12-19. condition than that of believing in it as God's truth (iii. 21-31). The Jews ought not to account this any- new doctrine, for it was precisely on this ground, that their ancestor, Abraham, from whom they derived their own claim, had himself received justification (iv. 1-25). In their own similar justification, the gracious, un- merited gift of God, all Christians ought to rejoice and triumph (v. 1-11); and so far from grudging to men of heathen race an equality of privilege with themselves, and so far from wishing that justification should be limited to themselves, or limited in any way, the Jews ought to exult and be grateful that justifica- tion was henceforward the universal inheritance of every human being who would accept it, as much as that mortality had been which was introduced into the world by the first man. "Accordingly," says Paul (v. 12), "as sin was intro- duced into the world by one individual, and death was introduced into the world by means, or as a conse- quence, of sin, just so the reason why death has proved the universal lot of man is, that all men have been sinners." If, in the case of the man who was the first to sin and the first to die, death is to be attributed to sin as its cause, the same must hold good as to other men. All other men must have sinned, because we know that all other men have died. — And thus the Apostle reaches, in another way of argument, the con- clusion that ail men alike, Jews as much as Gentiles, must owe their justification, their enjoyment of Chris- tianity, not to any desert, but to God's unconditioned goodness. (Comp. iii. 9, 23.) (13, 14.) " For it is thus shown that sin was present in the world from the time of the first man down to the time of the giving of the Law of Moses. You will say that a transgression cannot be charged where V. 12-19.] EPISTLE TO THE EOMANS. 251 there is no law to transgress, and you will remind me of my own assertion to that effect. (Comp. iv. 15.) But it is certain that death held sway in the world from the time of Adam to the time of Moses, and this too over such as had not transgressed a special express command, as Adam did, who, in this matter of the connection between sinning and dying, was a repre- sentation, a type, of what was to come after ; that is, of the human race, his posterity." (15.) Having thus argued the disease to be univer- sal, the Apostle goes on to urge that it may be expect- ed, from God's goodness, that the remedy will be so too. " But will not God's favor," he proceeds, " be as comprehensive as the exigency which calls for it, viz. sin % (Ov% o>9 to TrapaTTTGifjLa, ovtco kcll to yapiayia ;) Yes, indeed (yap) ; if, sharing in the sinfulness intro- duced by one person (that is, sinning as he had done), the many, like that person, have been condemned to die, still more assurance may we feel that the goodness of God, and his gracious gift brought by another person, Jesus Christ, were designed to be extended to the many ; to Jews and Gentiles alike ; to the whole human race." (16.) The Apostle repeats his question and reply. " Let me ask again, Will not God's bounty be as com- prehensive as was the loss which began with that one sinner 1 Yes, indeed ; a condemning judgment (judg- ment to condemnation, Kpl/jua eU KaTaKpi/ia) originated with one sin (e£ eVo?, with irapaiTTwixaTo^ understood, comp. 18) ; but God's gift of justification (to yapio-\xa eU hifcaiwua) is so large as to follow upon many sins." (17-19.) He repeats and expands them yet further. " Yes ; if, originating with the sin of one person, death began with that one person its universal reign, much more assurance may we feel that receivers of an abun- 252 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [V. 12-19. dantly gracious [a universally offered] gift of justifica- tion will reign in the life obtained through that other one, Jesus Christ. So then, as, introduced by one sin, God's sentence of condemnation to death took effect upon all men ; in like manner, introduced by one obe- dience, God's purpose of a life-giving justification has taken effect for all men. Yes ; as, beginning with the disobedience of one man, the many (Jews and Gentiles alike) became sinners, falling into like disobedience, so too the goodness of God will take care that the many (Gentiles and Jews alike) shall share in the justifica- tion offered by him who was the first to avoid sin." I shall not presume that I have given a correct para- phrase of a passage which has tasked the ingenuity of Scriptural commentators from Origen to the present day. From various causes, among which are its relations to forgotten opinions and controversies, and its singu- larly elliptical structure, there is not a more intricate passage in the New Testament ; and I cannot fitly ex- press my astonishment at the confidence of those in- terpreters who are sure of understanding it, when they draw from it that extraordinary system of theology which includes the doctrines of " imputed sin " and " imputed righteousness," — doctrines whose statement is a mere contradiction in terms. My business, how- ever, at present, I repeat, is not that of a commenta- tor upon the New Testament, but only upon such por- tions of it as put a sense upon language of the Old Testament. The argument before us evidently relates to the account of the disobedience of Adam in the first book of Moses (Gen. iii. 1-19). According to my view of that narrative, it is merely a fiction. (See "Lectures," &c, Vol. II. pp. 40-43.) The question for our present consideration is, whether Paul appears, from the passage before us, to have regarded it in a V. 12-19.] EPISTLE TO THE ROMANS. 253 different light ; — whether he has argued from it as genuine history. If Paul, in this passage, affirms any thing bearing on the authority and sense of the Old Testament nar- rative, it is, that there was one progenitor of the human race ; that his name was Adam ; and that he died in consequence of sinning. He either affirms this, or he affirms nothing on the subject. As I un- derstand him, he affirms nothing on the subject. I am struck by his language where he speaks of Adam (14) as a "type" (two?), a representation, a figure, an emblem, a symbol. I know very well that a being or thing, possessing an actual, independent existence, may be a type, or emblem, of some other being or thing. But still I cannot but remark that Paul here represents that " Adam " of the narrative in Genesis, who transgressed and died, in no other light than as a " figure of what was to be afterwards " ; lan- guage altogether suitable, had he understood the of- fending and sentenced Adam to be merely a creation of the ancient philosopher's fancy.* But, it will properly be asked, if Paul's argument does not imply and mean that the disobedience of Adam, as related in Genesis, and his death in conse- quence of that disobedience, were historical facts, what does it mean % I answer, Paul is using, in this instance, the kind of argument called by the logicians argumentum ad homi- nem, or argumentum ex concessis ; that is, where one confutes an opponent by reasonings drawn from prem- ises which the opponent, whether correctly or not, ad- mits. This kind of argument is perfectly legitimate * According to the Son of Sirach (Ecclus. xxv. 24), as much a learned Jew as St. Paul, it was not of Adam, the man, but " of the woman came the beginning of sin, and through her we all die." 22 254 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [V. 12-19. and well authorized. It pervades the Socratic dispu- tations throughout. It is as suitable to be used in Scripture, as elsewhere. And nowhere could it possi- bly be used with more appropriateness than in a case like the present. When St. Paul was combating an error drawn by the Jews from an erroneous interpre- tation of their Scriptures, (viz. the error that they alone were entitled, under the Christ's reign, to the privileges of God's justified people,) what more suita- ble than that he should confound them by showing the inconsistency of that opinion with another opinion derived by them from those same Scriptures, without intending to imply, on his own part, the correctness of this latter opinion % Now the Jews of the age of the Christian revelation were miserable interpreters of their ancient records, a fact which, to adduce no other proof, our Lord's con- versations with them constantly imply and expose. They supposed the narratives at the beginning of the Book of Genesis to be revealed truth. They sup- posed it to be matter of fact that Adam and his wife, the first man and woman, were divinely condemned to death, and to various hardships on the way thither, in consequence of having eaten of fruit which had been forbidden to their use. They perhaps supposed, though nothing of that kind does the narrative in Genesis de- clare, that, in consequence of the delinquency of the first pair, death became also the lot of their posterity. (Ecclus. xxv. 24.) Paul uses this error of theirs to dispossess their minds of a different, and, practically, far more hurtful error. He reasons with them on their own premises. On the ground, he says, of being God's sanctified people (Exod. xxxi. 13; Lev. xx. 8, xxi. 8, xxii. 9, 16, 32; Ezek. xx. 12, xxxvii. 28), God's holy people (Exod. xix. 6 ; IX. 6-17.] EPISTLE TO THE KOMANS. 255 Deut. vii. 6, xiv. 2, xxvi. 19), God's saints (Deut. xxxiii. 3 ; 2 Chron. vi. 41 ; Ps. xxxiv. 9, 1. 5, lxix. 2, cxlviii. 14), you set up a claim of desert to a monopoly of the privileges of Christianity. But you are not saints in any such sense as you suppose. You are sinners. That you are so, you must needs infer from another doctrine which you hold. You are of opinion that the death of Adam was, by divine appointment, the consequence of his having sinned. Death you regard as the punishment and the token of sin. If so, you and all other men have sinned, for death, you well know, is, and has been, the lot of all men alike. And then he goes on to argue from God's goodness, that if, in respect to death, and to that sinfulness which the Jews understood it to indicate, all men were on a level, God would not fail to place all men also on a level in respect to those Christian privileges by which the means were afforded of escape from sin. Here is nothing to authorize the theory of imputed sin, &c. So far from it, that the argument, borrowed by Paul from his opponents, that a man's subjection to the sentence of death proves that man's own personal sinfulness, looks in precisely the opposite direction. VIII. 36. As it is written, " For thy sake we are killed all the day long ; we are accounted as sheep for the slaughter." Every reader sees that this is but an accommodation which the Apostle makes to himself and his fellow- Christians of language used by the author of a Psalm (xliv. 22). IX. 6-17. They are not all Israel, which are of Israel : neither, because they are the seed of Abraham, are they all children : but, In 256 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [IX. 6-17. Isaac shall thy seed be called. That is, they which are the children of the flesh, these are not the children of God : but the children of the promise are counted for the seed. For this is the word of promise, " At this time will I come, and Sarah shall have a son." And not only this, but when Re- becca also had conceived by one, even by our father Isaac ; (for the children being not yet born, neither having done any good or evil, that the purpose of God according to elec- tion might stand, not of works, but of him that calleth ;) it was said unto her, " The elder shall serve the younger." As it is written, " Jacob have I loved, but Esau have I hated." What shall we say, then ? Is there unrighteousness with God ? God forbid. For he saith to Moses, " I will have mercy on whom I will have mercy, and I will have compassion on whom I will have compassion." So then it is not of him that willeth, nor of him that runneth, but of God that showeth mercy. For the Scripture saith unto Pharaoh, " Even for this same purpose have I raised thee up, that I might show my power in thee, and that my name might be declared throughout all the earth." Abraham had other children than Isaac, but in the line of Isaac alone were the promises made to Abraham fulfilled. (Gen. xxi. 12.) Isaac was born in accomplishment of a promise made to Sarah (Gen. xviii. 10, 14); and being so born, it was fit that he should be reckoned as the posterity to whom the promise applied. Of the two sons of Isaac, it was determined, before their birth, that only one, and he the younger, should enjoy and transmit the privileges designed by God for his chosen family. (Gen. xxv. 23 ; Mai. i. 2, 3.) Through Moses (that very Moses who gave them those promises from God on which they rested their overbearing claims) God had declared his unrestricted sovereignty, and his purpose not to limit his favors, or give to any claimant a monopoly of the prize. (Exod. ix. 16, xxxiii. 19.) Of these facts the Apostle avails himself to show to the Jews that God, in now adopting Gentiles into his family, was proceed- IX. 31-33.] EPISTLE TO THE ROMANS. 257 ing on no other principles than what had been applied in the case of the Jews themselves, and recognized in their own Scriptures. IX. 25-29. As he saith also in Osee, " I will call them my people, which were not my people ; and her beloved, which was not be- loved." And it shall come to pass, that in the place where it was said unto them, " Ye are not my people," there shall they be called the children of the living God. Esaias also crieth concerning Israel, " Though the number of the chil- dren of Israel be as the sand of the sea, a remnant shall be saved." For he will finish the work and cut it short in right- eousness : because a short work will the Lord make upon the earth. And as Esaias said before, " Except the Lord of Sabaoth had left us a seed, we had been as Sodoma, and been made like unto Gomorrha." That prerogative of God to adopt whom he would into his family, and that diminution of the compara- tive importance of the chosen people, which were such a surprise and scandal to Jews of his day, the Apostle says were matters recognized by their own ancient writers (Hosea i. 10, ii. 23; Is. x. 22, i. 9); so that they could be no cause of offence to such as professed to reverence the Scriptures. IX. 31-33. Israel, which followed after the law of righteousness, hath not attained to the law of righteousness. Wherefore ? Because they sought it not by faith, but as it were by the works of the law. For they stumbled at that stumbling-stone. As it is written, "Behold, I lay in Sion a stumbling-stone and rock of offence : and whosoever believeth on him shall not be ashamed." The first of these verses I would render (agreeably to the criticism on pp. 228 - 242), " Israel, though pro- fessedly adhering to the rule of justification, did not ar- 22* 258 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [X. 5-8. rive at a true apprehension of that rule." After which the Apostle goes on to say, that when the Israelites of his time had stumbled at the true doctrine concerning Christ and the terms of membership of his Church, it was a blindness and perversity not different from what their ancestors had displayed, according to the testi- mony of the holy men who had witnessed their aber- rations, and reproved their want of that faith which would have given them a happy confidence. (Is. viii. 14, 15, xxviii. 16 ; in which latter text Paul's quota- tion follows the Septuagint version.) X. 5-8. Moses describeth the righteousness which is of the Law, that the man which doeth those things shall live by them. But the righteousness which is of faith speaketh on this wise : " Say not in thine heart, 4 Who shall ascend into heaven ? ' (that is, to bring Christ down from above ;) or, 4 Who shall de- scend into the deep ? ' (that is, to bring up Christ again from the dead.) " But what saith it ? " The word is nigh thee, even in thy mouth, and in thy heart" : that is, the word of faith which we preach. The Apostle's reasoning I understand to be as fol- lows : If you would claim Christian justification — that is, a place in the Christian community — as your right on the ground of your obedience to the Jewish law, you must be able to show that you have rendered a perfect obedience, agreeably to a strict interpretation of that principle laid down by Moses (Lev. xviii. 5). But this no man can show. It concerns all men, then, to approve and admit that simple method of justifica- tion, whose only condition is belief. So easy and ac- cessible and attainable is it, as to admit of a natural application to it of that language in which Moses de- clares how freely his Law offers itself and its benefits to the well-disposed mind. Of that Law, says Paul, X. 15-21.] EPISTLE TO THE ROMANS. 259 Moses affirms (Deut. xxx. 11-14) that it is not ne- cessary to explore the sky or the deep in search of it, for it is close at hand to every seeker. So it is, the Apostle adds, with Christ and his justification. They need not to be sought in the heaven, whither Christ is gone, nor in the abodes of the dead. They are to be had by whosoever will believe and profess ; and- this, he says yet further (Rom. x. 11, 13), is a doctrine which may be expressed in words of Isaiah (xxviii. 16) and of Joel (ii. 32). X. 11-13. The Scripture saith, " Whosoever believeth on him shall not be ashamed Whosoever shall call upon the name of the Lord shall be saved." See Is. xlix. 23 ; Joel ii. 32 ; also the Septuagint version of Is. xxviii. 16, where, however, the Hebrew reads, " shall not make haste." X. 15-21. How shall they preach except they be sent? As it is written, " How beautiful are the feet of them that preach the Gospel of peace, and bring glad tidings of good things ! " But they have not all obeyed the Gospel : for Esaias saith, " Lord, who hath believed our report?" So then faith come th by hearing, and hearing by the word of God. But I say, Have they not heard ? Yes, verily, their sound went into all the earth, and their words unto the ends of the world. But I say, Did not Israel know ? First Moses saith, " I will pro- voke you to jealousy by them that are no people, and by a foolish nation I will anger you." But Esaias is very bold, and saith, " I was found of them that sought me not ; I was made manifest unto them that asked not after me." But to Israel he saith, " All day long I have stretched forth my hands unto a disobedient and gainsaying people." In this passage is a succession of quotations from the Old Testament, which it is plain that Paul merely 260 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [X. 15-21. accommodates to the present uses of his argument with the Judaizing Christians. He vindicates his own preaching to the Gentiles. To the bearer of such a message as that which he publishes may be well ap- plied, he says, that language which the Old Testament writer used (Is. lii. 7) of the herald of the return of the tribes from their captivity in Babylon. " Does any wonder that my preaching, if intended by Divine Prov- idence to be addressed to the Gentiles, is not univer- sally effectual % It is no greater failure than was com- plained of by the ancient sage. (Is. liii. 1.) And the very words of his question, 6 Who hath believed our message ? ' import that it is through hearing such in- struction as I diffuse, that faith is produced. And as to a small number of believers having been gathered, it is not so. On the contrary, I rejoice to ask, have they not listened, as well as heard \ Yes, verily ; the diffusion of the Gospel doctrine may already be de- scribed in that language which the Psalmist uses (xix. 4) of the universal proclamation of the heavenly lumi- naries. And has not Israel all along known, that God's favor might be extended to Gentiles ] Yes, as long ago as the time of Moses, God said that (in another sense, it is true) he would so favor the heathen, as that his people would be moved to angry jealousy. (Deut. xxxii. 21.) And elsewhere in the Old Testa- ment, very bold and strong language was used, more pertinent still to the case in hand, where it was said (Is. Ixv. 1,2), 'I was found of them that sought me not ; I was made manifest unto them that asked not after me.' "While the perversity of the Jews of the present day is well described in the same passage, where, con- cerning the Jews of that ancient time, God is repre- sented as saying, ' All day long I have stretched forth my hands unto a disobedient and gainsaying people.' " XL 7-10.] EPISTLE TO THE ROMANS. 261 XL 2-4. God hath not cast away his people which he foreknew. Wot ye not what the Scripture saith of Elias ? how he maketh intercession to God against Israel, "Lord, they have killed thy prophets, and digged down thine altars ; and I am left alone, and they seek my life." But what saith the an- swer of God unto him ? " I have reserved to myself seven thousand men, who have not bowed the knee to the image of Baal." To the cavilling question, " Hath God cast away the people formerly known by him [acknowledged as his chosen] 1 " as if an exclusion of them were in- volved in an admission of believing Gentiles to equal privileges, Paul replies, in a use of Old Testament lan- guage, and in allusion to a fact of Scriptural history. By no means all Jews, he says, are left out from Christ's Church. Many are members of it ; and none are ex- cluded from it, but by their own fault. It is now even as it was in ancient times, when Elijah is related to have complained that Jehovah's service was univer- sally deserted, and to have been told that he still had many worshippers. (1 Kings xix. 14, 18.) — "What the Scripture saith of Elias " ; literally, in Elias. See above, pp. 130, 134. XI. 7 - 10. Israel hath not obtained that which he seeketh for ; but the elec- tion hath obtained it ; and the rest were blinded (according as it is written, " God hath given them the spirit of slumber, eyes that they should not see, and ears that they should not hear ") unto this day. And David saith, " Let their table be made a snare, and a trap, and a stumbling-block, and a recompense unto them : let their eyes be darkened, that they may not see, and bow down their back alway." The Israelites, as a body, were formerly God's fa- vored, chosen, " elect " people. They would be so still, but for their own blindness, which, Paul says, may 262 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XL 26, 27. well be described in language applied by ancient writ- ers (Is. xxix. 10 ; Deut. xxix. 4 ; Ps. lxix. 22, 23) to the stupidity and perverseness of men of their own times. XI. 26, 27. So all Israel shall be saved : as it is written, " There shall come out of Sion the Deliverer, and shall turn away ungodliness from Jacob : for this is my covenant unto them, when I shall take away their sins." The force of this quotation appears from attention to the emphatic words of the clauses by which it is introduced. " So" says the Apostle, " all Israel shall be saved " (that is, all Israel that is saved at all). So it shall be saved. How ? By a process which words of ancient Scripture well describe. (Is. lix. 20, 21.) "As it is written"; that is, by the Deliverer's "turn- ing away ungodliness from Jacob," and by " the taking away of their sins." Through this " ungodliness," through these " sins," they incurred that blindness by which they kept themselves out of the communion of Christians. When their moral incapacities were taken away, the blindness which made them unbelievers would be dispelled, and the way into Christ's fold, through faith, would be unimpeded. XL 34. Who hath known the mind of the Lord ? or who hath been his counsellor ? Without the form of quotation, the Apostle here clothes his thought in the words of Old Testament Scripture. (Is. xl. 13, 14.) XII. 19, 20. Dearly beloved, avenge not yourselves, but rather give place unto wrath : for it is written, " Vengeance is mine ; I will XV. 3.] EPISTLE TO THE ROMANS. 263 repay, saith the Lord." Therefore, if thine enemy hunger, feed him ; if he thirst, give him drink : for in so doing thou shalt heap coals of fire on his head. The purport of these quotations (from Deut. xxxii. 35 and Pro v. xxv. 21, 22) is too plain to demand any comment. XIII. 8-10. He that loveth another hath fulfilled the Law. For this, Thou shalt not commit adultery, Thou shalt not kill, Thou shalt not steal, Thou shalt not covet ; and if there be any other com- mandment, it is briefly comprehended in this saying, name- ly, Thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself. Love worketh no ill to his neighbor : therefore love is the fulfilling of the Law. " The Law " of social duty, expressed in the com- mandments of the second table (Exod. xx. 12-17; comp. Rom. xiii. 9), consists, with one exception (Exod. xx. 12), of prohibitions of different kinds of "ill" to our " neighbor." But " love " — the principle of the command, " Thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself" — " worketh no ill to his neighbor." The whole com- prehends every part ; and so " love is the fulfilling of the Law." XIV. 11-13. It is written, "As I live, saith the Lord, every knee shall bow to me, and every tongue shall confess to God." So then every one of us shall give account of himself to God. Let us not, therefore, judge one another any more. A natural application of words in which an ancient writer (Is. xlv. 23) expresses his hope of a future uni- versal worship of Jehovah. XV. 3. For even Christ pleased not himself; but, as it is written, "The reproaches of them that reproached thee fell on me." 264 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XV. 4. The quotation is from a Psalm (lxix. 9 ; comp. " Lectures," &c., Vol. IV. p. 323) in which it is alto- gether unquestionable that the writer was speaking of himself. He addresses himself to God, and says, " The zeal of thy house hath eaten me up " ; and then follow the words which Paul adopts. This language, the Apostle says, may well be applied to Christ, who, in the service of God, exposed himself to the insults of God's enemies. XV. 4. Whatsoever things were written aforetime were written for our learning, that we through patience and comfort of the Scrip- tures might have hope. " Whatsoever things were written aforetime were written for our instruction," just as every thing is done for our profit, that we actually profit by. Pro- vided we derive a hopeful spirit of resignation and tranquillity from the Scriptures, then it turns out that they were written, " that we, through patience and comfort of the Scriptures, might have hope." Caesar was not slain with any view to discourage the ambitious schemes of Napoleon. But if Napoleon had been deterred by reading the record of that deed, it would have been done and recorded for his admoni- tion. Such is the unquestionable use of language. (See above, p. 26 et seq.) And thus it is that Paul, having applied to Christ language used by a writer who, in ancient times, had been persecuted for his re- ligious loyalty, says, that " whatsoever things were written aforetime " may be put to the use of instruct- ing men in later days. XV. 8-12. Now I say that Jesus Christ was a minister of the circumcision for the truth of God, to confirm the promises made unto the XV. 20, 21.] EPISTLE TO THE KOMANS. 265 fathers ; and that the Gentiles might glorify God for his mercy ; as it is written, " For this cause I will confess to thee among the Gentiles, and sing unto thy name." And again he saith, " Rejoice, ye Gentiles, with his people." And again, "Praise the Lord, all ye Gentiles ; and laud him, all ye people." And again Esaias saith, " There shall be a root of Jesse, and he that shall rise to reign over the Gen- tiles ; in him shall the Gentiles trust." Jesus Christ, says Paul, " was a minister of the cir- cumcision," — that is, born of, or commissioned to, the covenant race, — to bring about (not to contravene, as it was pretended that indulgence to the Gentiles would do) the true purpose of God, and to fulfil an expecta- tion raised by the very fathers of the Jewish line ; viz. that the Gentiles should have occasion to " glorify God for his mercy." And this point he establishes by quotations from ancient Scripture, in which the heathen are spoken of as future worshippers of Jehovah, and destined to share in the blessings of the Messiah's reign. (Ps. xviii. 49 ; Deut. xxxii. 43 ; Ps. cxvii. 1 ; Is. xi. 10 ; comp. Gen. xviii. 18, xxii. 18, xxvi. 4, xxviii. 14.) XV. 20,21. Yea, so have I strived to preach the Gospel, not where Christ was named, lest I should build upon another man's founda- tion : but, as it is written, " To whom he was not spoken of, they shall see : and they that have not heard shall under- stand." Who can for a moment doubt that these words (from Is. lii. 15), used by the original writer in an entirely different sense, are here applied by St. Paul, in the way of mere rhetorical accommodation, to the plan which he declares himself to have pursued, of carry- ing the message of Christianity to regions where no preacher had preceded him 1 23 266 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XVI. 25, 26. XVI. 25, 26. The mystery, which was kept secret since the world began, but now is made manifest, and by the Scriptures of the prophets, according to the commandment of the everlasting God, made known to all nations for the obedience of faith. The " mystery " — the hitherto unknown truth of the Gospel — " kept secret since the world (6 alcov) began," — from the very beginning of that dispensa- tion which the Gospel was to succeed, — was now " made known to all nations" And it was made known " by the Scriptures of the prophets," because those writers had from time to time expressed their expectation that " all nations " would ultimately in some way have a place in God's benignant regard. (See, e. g., the texts quoted on the last page.) SECTION II. FIRST EPISTLE TO THE CORINTHIANS. The quotations in this Epistle are all of that kind which present no difficulty to the interpreter who adopts the principles on which I have proceeded ; while most of them would be explained on those prin- ciples, by critics of any school whatever. They are instances of accommodation by Paul, to his own uses, of language used by writers of the Old Testament, without any intimation that the application made of the words by the Apostle had been in the mind of the original writer. Having made this remark once for all, I need scarcely do more than set down Paul's words, with references to the passages from which they respectively quote. II. 9, 10.] FIRST EPISTLE TO THE CORINTHIANS. 267 I. 2. To them that are sanctified in Christ Jesus, called to be saints. They were " sanctified " and " saints " collectively, as constituting a community of believers in Christ's religion. (See above, pp. 225 - 228.) I. 19. It is written, " I will destroy the wisdom of the wise, and will bring to nothing the understanding of the prudent." Rebuking the presumption of his contemporaries, Isaiah (xxix. 14 ; comp. " Lectures," &c, Vol. III. p. 222) had represented Jehovah as using this threat concerning them. Paul appropriately applies the lan- guage to the ambitious marplots of his own day. In part of the following verse, " Where is the wise 1 where is the scribe % " Paul seems to have had in mind an expression of Isaiah in a different place (xxxiii. 18). I. 31. According as it is written, " He that glorieth, let him glory in the Lord." An inaccurate citation from the Book of Jeremiah (ix. 24). II. 9, 10. As it is written, " Eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither have entered into the heart of man, the things which God hath prepared for them that love him. But God hath revealed them unto us by his Spirit." An ancient writer (Is. lxiv. 4 ; comp. " Lectures," &c., Vol. III. p. 270) had made this remark concerning the marvellous providences of God. Paul applies it, without verbal exactness, to that token of God's gra- cious providence, given in the revelation of Chris- tianity. 268 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [II. 16. II. 16. Who hath known the mind of the Lord, that he may instruct him ? Without formal quotation, Paul seems to be using Old Testament language. (See Isaiah xl. 13.) III. 19,20. The wisdom of this world is foolishness with God. For it is written, " He taketh the wise in their own craftiness." And again, " The Lord knoweth the thoughts of the wise, that they are vain." The sentences quoted are from the Books of Job (v. 13) and the Psalms (xciv. 11). V. 7, 8. For even Christ our passover is sacrificed for us : therefore let us keep the feast, not with old leaven, neither with the leaven of malice and wickedness ; but with the unleavened bread of sincerity and truth. Language strongly figurative, but quite intelligible, if we do not undertake to refine too far. The Jews, when the paschal lamb was slain, feasted upon it with unleavened bread. (" Lectures," &c., Vol. I. p. 137.) " Our passover, too, is slain for us, even Christ," says the Apostle (such is the exact rendering of the words). By his death a feast is spread for us, — the feast of God's grace. Let us gladly keep the offered festivity; and, instead of a " leaven of malice and wickedness," — a fermenting element of angry passions, — let our unleavened bread be a spirit of sincerity and truth. VI. 16. What ! know ye not that he which is joined to an harlot is one body ? for two, saith he, shall be one flesh. To a hasty view, the form of Paul's argument here is that of an appeal to Scriptural authority. But he X 1-5.] FIRST EPISTLE TO THE CORINTHIANS. 269 could have intended no more than such an illustration as any book, without authority, would afford. For the passage to which he refers (Gen. ii. 24) relates pro- fessedly and solely to the conjugal relation, and not at all to the relation of which he is speaking. IX. 9, 10. It is written in the Law of Moses, " Thou shalt not muzzle the mouth of the ox that treadeth out the corn." Doth God take care for oxen ? or saith he it altogether for our sakes ? for our sakes, no doubt, this is written. Nothing can be clearer than that the provision of the Mosaic Law here referred to (Deut. xxv. 4) was intended to have a merely literal interpretation. St. Paul, urging the rightful claim of preachers of the Gospel to a support, quotes the words as embodying a principle which demanded a much wider application than that originally designed. " Is God careful for oxen % " he asks (that is, for oxen alone) ; " or is he as- suredly saying it for our benefit % For our sakes, no doubt, this is written." It was written for them, not at all as having originally had them in view, but as susceptible of a useful application to their case. It is a result, and not a design, that Paul indicates (the e«- PariKov, as distinguished from the anioXo^iKov. See above, pp. 27, 28 ; also Rom. xv. 4 ; 1 Cor. x. 6, 11). X. 1-5. For, brethren, I would not that ye should be ignorant, how that all our fathers were under the cloud, and all passed through the sea ; and were all baptized unto Moses in the cloud and in the sea ; and did all eat the same spiritual meat ; and did all drink the same spiritual drink ; for they drank of that spiritual Rock that followed them : and that Rock was Christ. But with many of them God was not well pleased ; for they were overthrown in the wilderness. 23* 270 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [X. 1-5. The point which St. Paul is urging is, that justified persons, persons who have been received into the com- munity of believers, the Christian Church, may, after all, through misconduct, fail of the Divine favor and acceptance. And this point he illustrates by allusions to Jewish history. The signs of a place in the Chris- tian brotherhood were baptism, and eating and drink- ing the elements of the Lord's Supper. So it might be said that the Jews, at their Exodus, were " baptized unto Moses" by the spray of the Red Sea through which they passed, and the guiding cloud which went before them in their marches, and that they kept a Eucharist together when they refreshed themselves on the manna and the water supernaturally provided in the wilderness. Yet, after all, " with many of them God was not well pleased " ; the proof of which was, that " they were overthrown in the wilderness" (Numb, xiv. 37, xxv. 11). And so it might be with Christians ; they, like those Jews, might be faithless to their privi- leges, and fall away from God's favor. — " They drank of the spiritual Rock that followed them " (x. 4). Illus- trations of this expression have been drawn from an alleged legend of the Jews to the effect that a run of water accompanied their fathers in the march through the wilderness. (See Schottgen ad loc.) But I appre- hend it to be in consonance with common use, to un- derstand the word " follow " as denoting simply re- peated occurrence. The rock followed them, because they drank from it at different times (Exod. xvii. 6 ; Numb. xx. 11 ; comp. Ps. lxviii. 9, xxiii. 6). — " And the rock was Christ " (ibid.) ; that is, Just as I have made of the passage through the .Red Sea an emblem of Christian baptism, and of the supply of manna an emblem of the Christian eucharist, so by the rock from which our fathers drank in the wilderness, I X. 11.] FIRST EPISTLE TO THE CORINTHIANS. 271 symbolize Christ, the source of our souls' refresh- ment. X. 6. Now these things were our examples, to the intent we should not lust after evil things, as they also lusted. The narratives referred to " were our examples " (or rather, warnings), because capable of imparting to us instruction. (See above, pp. 264, 269.) X. 9. Neither let us tempt Christ, as some of them also tempted, and were destroyed of serpents. As in the two next preceding verses (comp. Exod. xxxii. 6 ; Numb. xxv. 9), and in the next following (comp. Numb. xiv. 2, 35), so in this, the Apostle refers to a narrative in the Law (Numb. xxi. 5, 6). The word " Christ " is of doubtful authenticity. In its place, some of the best authorities (manuscripts and versions) read Lord, and others, God. If we accept Christ as the true reading, we shall then understand an ellipsis after the second " tempted " (" as some of them also tempted [God]," &c.), or we shall understand Christ, in this place, as a descriptive title, applicable to Moses as well as Jesus, and not as a proper name (" Neither let us tempt our anointed leader, as some of them did theirs "). X. 11. Now all these things happened unto them for ensamples : and they are written for our admonition, upon whom the ends of the world are come. The same exposition is here required as in the statement to the same effect, a few verses back (1 Cor. x. 6). 272 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [X. 20, 26. X. 20, 26. They sacrifice to devils, and not to God. The earth is the Lord's, and the fulness thereof. The Apostle seems to be interweaving sentences of old Scripture into his discourse (Deut. xxxii. 1 7 ; Ps. xxiv. 1). XL 8, 9. For the man is not of the woman ; but the woman of the man. Neither was the man created for the woman ; but the woman for the man. It has been thought that here are references to the account of the creation of Eve, in Genesis (ii. 18, 21). But this is uncertain ; Paul says nothing expressly to that effect ; and it becomes less probable when we con- sider that the same Old Testament book contains a different account of the origin of the human race (Gen. i. 26, 27 ; comp. « Lectures," &c, Vol. II. p. 35). Quite independently of any allusion to the first Book of Moses, Paul might say that woman belonged to man, and was created for his benefit. But supposing that there was such an allusion, it would not imply any certificate on Paul's part of the historical correct- ness of that account. It would be more naturally in- terpreted as simply an argumentum ad hominem. XIV. 21, 22. In the Law it is written, " With men of other tongues and other lips will I speak unto this people ; and yet for all that will they not hear me, saith the Lord." Wherefore tongues are for a sign, not to them that believe, but to them that believe not. " In the Law it is written " (21). Here, as in some other places, the word Law stands for the whole vol- ume of Old Testament Scriptures. (Comp. John x. 34, XIV. 21,22.] FIRST EPISTLE TO THE CORINTHIANS. 273 xv. 25.) Paul's reference, made evidently from mem- ory, is a loose and inexact one to two disconnected passages of the Prophets Isaiah (xxviii. 11, 12) and Jeremiah (v. 14, 15). Isaiah says, "With stammering lips, and another tongue, will he speak to this people ; yet they would not hear " ; which Lowth (note ad loc), with sufficient correctness, paraphrases thus : " Ye shall be taught, by a strange tongue, and a stam- mering lip, in a strange country ; ye shall be carried into captivity by a people whose language shall be un- intelligible to you, and which ye shall be forced to learn like children." Jeremiah's language (which Paul may be thought to have had especially in view, when in his quoted words he represents God as speak- ing, which the passage in Isaiah does not) is, " Where- fore, thus saith the Lord of hosts : ' Lo, I will bring a nation upon you from far, O house of Israel,' saith the Lord ; ' it is a mighty nation, it is an ancient nation, a nation whose language thou knowest not, neither understandest what they say.' " Here, too, the sole meaning evidently is that God's vengeance should be visited upon Israel through the agency of invaders, of foreign race and speech. It is simply in the way of a rhetorical application, that St. Paul uses the an- cient writer's words. Not to say that their tenor and purpose were quite aside from those of his argument, he would, at least, had he intended to use them in the way of argument, have felt bound to use them with some precision. His statement is simply equivalent to the following : When God, of old, permitted alien in- vaders to execute his judgments on his people, he was said to have spoken to his people " by other tongues and other lips." It was the disobedient, and not the faithful, whom he then addressed. The same is true now, in a different sense. Now, too, when he employs 274 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XIV. 34. instruments speaking foreign languages, he appeals thereby " not to them that believe, but to them that believe not." XIV. 34. They are commanded to be under obedience, as also saith the Law. See Gen. iii. 16. The words they are commanded^ are supplied by our translators. Nothing correspond- ing to them was written by Paul, nor does he give any intimation that a rule is binding on the conscience of believers, by force of being found recorded in the Book of Genesis. He says that it belongs to women "to be under obedience," a position also assigned to the women for whom he wrote by the Law which they revered. He says that it is their place, and that, in so declaring, he declares no more than a rule of behavior which they own. (Comp. below, p. 295.) XV. 3, 4. I delivered unto you first of all that which I also received, how that Christ died for our sins according to the Scriptures ; and that he was buried, and that he rose again the third day ac- cording to the Scriptures. What does Paul mean here by " the Scriptures " % In the Second Epistle of Peter (iii. 16) we find Paul's writings referred to as Scriptures. Did Paul here use the phrase in the same way, as indicating writings of his Christian associates ? I do not suppose that he could allude to either of our Four Gospels, for I understand them all to have been composed later than Paul's Epistles to the Corinthians. But other works of the same sort were earlier in circulation (Luke i. 1,2); and it is supposable that it was one or more of them that Paul had in view when he said that what XV. 3, 4.] FIRST EPISTLE TO THE CORINTHIANS. 275 he orally delivered was according to what others had written. So the author of the Epistle of James quotes as " Scripture " some book not belonging to the collec- tion which we call by that name (iv. 5). If, however, by " the Scriptures," he meant the books of the Old Testament, in what sense was it that he declared Christ to have died, to have been buried, and to have risen " again the third day, according to the Scriptures " 1 For whoever may suppose that he finds Christ's death and burial alluded to in the Jewish books, no one will pretend that they speak of Christ's rising, still less of his rising on the third day. My ex- planation of this, provided we suppose the " Scrip- tures " of the Old Testament to be referred to, depends on the force of the word rendered " according to " (Kara). I think that, by rules both of etymology and common sense, the accordance here indicated may be understood as merely absence of contradiction. Con- trariety and consistency exhaust the relations between a fact and a written statement connected with it. When there is not contrariety, there is a sort of ac cord. Entertaining those entirely incorrect views which the Jews of Paul's time did entertain concern- ing the coming Messiah, they imagined the alleged facts of the death, burial, and resurrection of Jesus to be fatal to the pretensions of Jesus to be the Messiah, inasmuch as they were contradicted by the whole tenor of ancient Scripture. Paul, on the contrary, held, and here declares, that those Scriptures, when rightly esti- mated as to their authority, and rightly interpreted as to their sense, did not contradict his declarations respecting Christ's death, burial, and resurrection. In the sense of being reconcilable with, not contradictory to, the true original idea of the Christ, as presented in the Old Testament books, those facts were " according 276 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XV. 20. to the Scriptures." The accordance here indicated is the converse of the opposition referred to by Paul in a similar connection in the words (Acts xxvi. 22, 23), " saying none other things than those which the Proph- ets and Moses did say should come, that Christ should suffer," &c. (See above, pp. 20, 223.) XV. 20. Now is Christ risen from the dead, the first fruits of them that slept. The metaphor of " first fruits " is drawn from the Law. The word used here [airapxn) appears to denote prime fruit, fruit first in point of excellence, while another word {irpcdToyevv^ixa) means fruit first in point of time. So Origen says (" Opp.," Tom. IV. p. 4, edit. Delarue), " One would not err in calling the Law of Moses the earliest fruit (irpcoroyew^fjia^ and the Gospel the prime fruit (aTrapxv)" The distinction is observed in the Septuagint, though overlooked in our English version. Christ was not the " first fruits of them that slept," in the sense of having been restored to life before any other, but in the sense of being the most excellent, the chief, the leader, the head, of them that have slept and risen. XV. 22. As in Adam all die, even so in Christ shall all be made alive. By the phrase " all in Adam," every one under- stands, all mankind, just as to speak of a person as " in Christ " (comp. Horn. xvi. 7) is to describe him as a Christian. Into such forms of expression every writer and speaker naturally slides. It would be alto- gether unsafe at this day to argue from a person's using the phrase " every son of Adam " in the sense XV. 25-27.] FIRST EPISTLE TO THE CORINTHIANS. 277 of the whole human race, that he believed in what is related of Adam in the beginning of Genesis as his- torical fact. Equally unjust would it be to Paul to frame such an argument from his words. By force of ancient usage, founded originally in error, we naturally speak of the rising and setting of the sun. Must every one who uses those forms of expression be held as de- claring his belief in the false natural philosophy which they imply % We speak of certain physical affections under the names of St. Vitus' s dance, and St. Anthony's fire. By the use of this phraseology, do we pledge ourselves to any theory of disease 1 If by the language " as in Adam all die," we see cause rather to understand " as all men die with [or, like] Adam " (comp. 1 Cor. iv. 21 ; Heb. ix. 25 ; 2 Cor. xiii. 4 ; Col. ii. 6), the reasoning as to the question in hand will be the same. In the mention of Adam as the person with whom that universal mortality be- gan which was the only thing to his purpose, and which was well known by experience, Paul will be understood as employing a form of expression, or of thought, familiar to his countrymen, without proposing to vouch for the correctness of the traditionary opin- ion in which it had its origin. XV. 25-27. He must reign, till he hath put all enemies under his feet. The last enemy that shall be destroyed is death. For he hath put all things under his feet. In expressing his conviction of the future universal empire of his Master, Paul does but advert to the lan- guage of a writer of former days who had no higher conception of the Messiah than as a splendid earthly sovereign, at whose feet Jehovah, his patron, would 24 278 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [XV. 32. strike down all his foes. (Ps. ex. 1 ; comp. " Lectures," &c.,Vol. IV. pp. 314-316.) XV. 32. If the dead rise not, let us eat and drink, for to-morrow we die. Paul remembers words of an ancient writer (Is. xxii. 13) which forcibly express his thought, and adopts them accordingly. XV. 45. And so it is written, " The first man Adam was made a living soul ; the last Adam was made a quickening spirit." Where is this " written " % The first clause, or rather what is very like the first clause, in the Book of Gen- esis (ii. 7) ; the latter clause, in no book that we are acquainted with. XV. 54, 55. When this corruptible shall have put on incorruption, and this mortal shall have put on immortality, then shall be brought to pass the saying that is written, " Death is swallowed up in victory. O death, where is thy sting ? O grave, where is thy victory ? " There is in these verses a certain resemblance to two passages of the prophetical writings (Is. xxv. 8 ; Ho sea xiii. 14) ; but no otherwise than in the way of verbal accommodation. I. I.] SECOND EPISTLE TO THE COKINTHIANS. 279 SECTION III. SECOND EPISTLE TO THE CORINTHIANS. Most of the references to the Old Testament in this Epistle consist of quotations such as are used by all writers to give liveliness to a discourse, and raise no question as to the construction put upon the Jewish Scriptures by the author of the book. See 2 Corinthi- ans iv. 13 (comp. Ps. cxvi. 10) ; vi. 2 (comp. Is. xlix. 8) ; vi. 16-18 (comp. Lev. xxvi. 11, 12, Is. lii. 11, 12, 2 Sam. vii. 14); viii. 15 (comp. Exod. xvi. 18); ix. 6 (comp. Prov. xi. 24, xxii. 8) ; ix. 9 (comp. Ps. cxii. 9) ; xiii. 1 (comp. Deut. xix. 15). In most of these instan- ces, the words quoted are applied in their original sense ; in some, as in the last specified, where the Apostle speaks of his three journeys as three " witnesses" to the conduct of his Corinthian converts, the reader sees an example of the habit of the New Testament writers to accommodate Old Testament language to meanings and uses of their own. In one chapter of this Epistle (iii. 7-16), a fanciful application is made, in different ways, of the relation (Exod. xxxiv. 29, 30, 33-35) that when Moses came down from Mount Sinai, after receiving the elementary Law, his face was radiant, and he covered it with a veil. Having only a rhetorical embellishment in view, Paul adopted that interpretation of this narrative which was current in his time, as it is in ours, though its correctness is by no means unquestionable. (See « Lectures," &c, Vol. I. p. 229, note.) I. 1. All the saints which are in all Achaia. 280 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [HI. 7, 8. That is, the receivers of Christianity. (See above, pp. 225-228.) III. 7, 8. If the ministration of death in letters, engraven in stones, was glorious, so that the children of Israel could not stead- fastly behold the face of Moses for the glory of his counte- nance, which glory was to be done away ; how shall not the ministration of the spirit be rather glorious ? Paul's ministry was a " ministration of the spirit " (comp. iii. 6), because it imparted rich spiritual privi- leges, hitherto unenjoyed. The ministry of Moses was a " ministration of death," because it dealt largely in denunciations of death ; capital punishment was its great penalty. It was for the most part a code of hard and rigid law, having appropriately its elemen- tary doctrines "written and engraven in stones" (comp. Exod. xxxi. 18) ; yet, in all its inferiority to the Gospel, so " glorious " was it, that the face of its bearer Moses was suffused with a transitory, indeed, but an intolera- ble brightness. How intensely glorious, then, must be the superior " ministration of the spirit " ! Every judicious reader sees here, not argument (which was not intended), but the natural use of an historical statement in the way of poetical illustration of a glow- ing thought. III. 13 - 15. Not as Moses, which put a veil over his face, that the children of Israel could not steadfastly look to the end of that which is abolished : but their minds were blinded ; for until this day remaineth the same veil in the reading of the Old Testa- ment ; it not being revealed that it is done away in Christ. But even unto this day, when Moses is read, the veil is upon their heart. Entirely changing the application of the circum- stances of the same narrative, Paul now represents XL 3.] SECOND EPISTLE TO THE COEINTHIANS. 281 the veil as drawn over the hearts of his countrymen, to blind them " in the reading of the Old Testament," and only to be removed by Christ. How can any re- flecting person attend to such language as this, and continue to maintain that, whenever the New Testa- ment writers use a passage from the Old, they intend to adduce it in its original sense, and make it, as such, a basis for their argument 1 VII. 15. What concord hath Christ with Beliar ? By its etymology, Belial (7J£* v3, of which Beliar is the Syriac form) means worthlessness. In the Old Testament the word only appears in combination with "children" (Deut. xiii. 13), "sons" (Judges xix. 22), "daughter" (1 Sam. i. 16), and "man" (1 Sam. xxv. 25). XI. 3. I fear, lest by any means, as the serpent beguiled Eve through his subtlety, so your minds should be corrupted from the simplicity that is in Christ. Nothing can possibly be inferred from this language as to Paul's opinion of the fabulous or historical char- acter of the history, in Genesis, of the serpent and Eve. Should I say, " I fear you will be tantalized as Tantalus was, when the water for which he thirsted would go no further than his lips," by no sound prin- ciple of interpretation could my words be shown to imply that I recognized the story of Tantalus as the record of a fact. 24 * 282 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [II. 16. SECTION IV. EPISTLE TO THE GALATIANS. II. 16. Knowing that a man is not justified by the works of the Law, but by the faith of Jesus Christ, even we have believed in Jesus Christ, that we might be justified by the faith of Christ, and not by the works of the Law ; for by the works of the Law shall no flesh be justified. The sense of these words, and the import of the doctrine they express, have been fully discussed in my remarks on the corresponding statement in the Epistle to the Romans. (See above, pp. 228 - 242.) III. 6, 7. Abraham believed God, and it was accounted to him for right- eousness. Know ye, therefore, that they which are of faith, the same are the children of Abraham. The Apostle here makes the same use of a state- ment in Genesis (xv. 6) as he makes in his Epistle to the Romans. (See above, pp. 234, 246.) Belief in God, he says here, was, according to the ancient rec- ord, Abraham's sole title to " righteousness " ; that is, to justification. And it is so, he argues, with all men, as much as with Abraham. Faith is the only princi- ple and condition of admittance to the privileges con- veyed by God's revealed truth. Not the descendants of Abraham by birth are his spiritual heirs, as the Jews maintained, nor those who, like that patriarch, observed the rite of circumcision, but those who, like him, believed ; " they which are of faith, the same are the children of Abraham." III. 10-12.] EPISTLE TO THE GALATIANS. 283 III. 8, 9. The Scripture, foreseeing that God would justify the heathen through faith, preached before the Gospel unto Abraham, saying, " In thee shall all nations be blessed." So then they which be of faith are blessed with faithful Abraham. Paul here adopts the obvious sense of the Divine promise anciently made to Abraham (Gen. xviii. 18, xxii. 18), as indicating that other nations, besides that of which he was to be the progenitor, were to receive benefits through him ; a promise which was, in the fulness of time, to be accomplished by the agency of Jesus, his descendant. But how could " the heathen," " all nations," be blessed in Abraham, " with faithful Abraham " % Clearly, by the terms of the case, it could not be by virtue of any hereditary transmission of the blessing in his custody, for the Gentiles were aliens from his blood. That " all nations" were to be blessed in him, Scripture had declared. They could not be blessed in him by virtue of being his posterity ; for his posterity they were not. There was but one other way ; and this, Paul argued, was the true way. They must come to be blessed in Abraham, by the same means by which Abraham himself had ob- tained the blessing. They must be justified by believ- ing, even as Abraham had been justified. III. 10-12. For as many as are of the works of the Law are under the curse : for it is written, " Cursed is every one that continueth not in all things which are written in the book of the Law to do them." But that no man is justified by the Law in the sight of God, it is evident : for, " The just by faith shall live." And the Law is not of faith : but, " He that doeth them shall live in them." Paul meets these punctilious Jewish reasoners on their own ground. When you undertake, he says, so 284 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [III. 13, 14. to exalt the authority of the Law, consider what that authority declares. Before you presume to rely for your justification on your observance of the Law, and to exclude from justification those who do not keep the Law, observe that, by its own terms, your preten- sions will be overthrown. What blessing can it give you, on the ground you assume, when, on the contrary, it expressly denounces a curse (Deut. xxvii. 26) against whoever does not perseveringly obey every one of its requisitions, which you very well know that no one of you does, and when the life it promises, according to its own language in another place, is only for those who keep its " statutes and judgments " (Lev. xviii. 5) ; while, according to another Old Testament writer (Hab. ii. 4), whose language well expresses the doc- trine insisted on by Paul, the spiritual life of the jus- tified is that which they attain to, not by means of keeping the Law, but by means of faith ? III. 13, 14. Christ hath redeemed us from the curse of the Law, (being made a curse for us, for it is written, " Cursed is every one that hangeth on a tree,") that the blessing of Abraham might come on the Gentiles through Jesus Christ, that we might receive the promise of the Spirit through faith. " The curse of the Law " here spoken of, I take to be the imprecation quoted, just above (Gal. hi. 10), by Paul. Christ had redeemed, or relieved, us from it, by bringing believers under a different dispensation of religion from that to which this language related. The quotation which follows (from Deut. xxi. 23) I have placed, with its introduction, in a parenthesis, to indicate the relation which, in my view, the sentence so constituted bears to the context. There is, I pre- sume, no imaginable sense in which Paul could have III. 16, 17.] EPISTLE TO THE GALATIANS. 285 intended to assert, as a substantial verity, that his Master was " made a curse." The passage which he quotes, relating to a matter as remote as possible from theological doctrine, prescribes a speedy burial of male- factors. (Comp. " Lectures," &c, Vol. I. p. 482, note||.) As Paul writes, and repeats freely the words blessing and curse, a passage in which the latter word is used occurs to his memory ; along with it, an idea presents itself, such as, in the profane writers, we are accus- tomed to call a conceit ; a vague resemblance strikes him between the crucifixion of Jesus, and the ancient exposure of the dead bodies of criminals by " hanging on a tree " ; by one of those rapid strokes, which in all writers give spirit to a composition without con- tributing to the main texture of discourse, he throws out the allusion in a brief parenthesis, and then passes on with his argument. It needs scarcely be added, that by " the blessing of Abraham " we are to under- stand the blessings to be conveyed through him to all nations, and by " the promise of the spirit " to be ob- tained " through faith," the spiritual privileges which were assured to the believer. III. 16, 17. Now to Abraham and his seed were the promises made (he saith not, " and to seeds," as of many, but as of one, " and to thy seed," which is Christ) ; and this I say, that the covenant that was confirmed before of God in Christ, the Law, which was four hundred and thirty years after, cannot disannul, that it should make the promise of none effect. Here, again, I think that, by throwing a clause into a parenthesis, the relation of the different parts of the passage to each other is better exhibited. I understand the Apostle as making in it a passing suggestion, not belonging to the main thread of the argument, to this • • 286 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [IV. 21-27. effect : Mark, by the way, that the Old Testament text (Gen. xvii. 7) speaks of one posterity, and not of several, as if designing to intimate the unity of a Church, which being one in Jesus its head (comp. Gal. iii. 28, 29) recognizes no distinction between Jew and Gentile. Paul's argument in the next verse is, that, according to the well-established principles of all contracts, the Mosaic Law, on which the Jews founded their exclu- sive claims, could not abrogate or change the condi- tions of that covenant with Abraham, " confirmed of God before as to Christ," in which it had been prom- ised that to all nations Abraham's posterity should impart blessings, to be secured by faith in their giver. — " The Law, which was four hundred and thirty years after." Four hundred and thirty years after what 1 After the covenant with Abraham, spoken of immediately before 1 There was, I suppose, an interval of six hundred and forty-five years between those two events. (Gen. xv. 13 ; Exod. xii. 41 ; Acts vii. 6 ; comp. " Lectures," &c., Vol. I. p. 140.) The reading of the Septuagint version, however, which was in the hands of Paul's Galatian friends, represented the interval as being but four hundred and thirty years ; and as his argument was equally good whether the time was longer or shorter, there was no reason why he should raise an irrelevant question by correcting the received computation. Or we may reconcile the figures by translating Paul's words (though the definite article is not expressed), " after the four hundred and thirty years " ; that is, the memorable four hundred and thirty years of African servitude. (Comp. Exod. xii. 41.) IV. 21-27. Tell me, ye that desire to be under the Law, do ye not hear the < IV. 21-27.] EPISTLE TO THE GALATIANS. 287 Law ? For it is written, that Abraham had two sons, the one by a bondmaid, the other by a free woman. But he who was of the bondwoman was born after the flesh ; but he of the freewoman was by promise. Which things are an allegory : for these are the two covenants ; the one from the Mount Sinai, which gendereth to bondage, which is Agar. For this Agar is Mount Sinai in Arabia, and answereth to Jerusalem which now is, for she is in bondage with her children. But Jerusalem which is above is free, which is our mother. For it is written, " Rejoice, thou barren that bearest not ; break forth and cry, thou that travailest not ; for the desolate hath many more children than she which hath an husband." The sense of this passage is utterly obscured in our common version by a mistranslation of three Greek words (anva Igtiv aW^yopovjjieva). The rendering "which things are an allegory" represents Paul as saying precisely what he did not mean to say. The history of the births of Ishmael and Isaac was not an allegory ; nor did the Apostle so understand it ; nor does the grammatical construction of his words admit of such a version. We should read, "Which things [which historical facts] are allegorized" (that is, by Paul, in the manner which he goes on to state) ; or, " which things, when allegorized, are [or, stand] thus ; namely, these [the mothers of Abraham's sons] are [or, represent] the two covenants," &c. To allegorize is to frame an allegory; and an allegory is often framed on a basis of historical facts; and that is what Paul declares himself to be doing in the present in- stance. In this and another instance or two, he is a constructer of allegory, but an allegorical interpreter (who, of course, supposes allegory to exist before he proceeds to interpret on that supposition) I apprehend that Paul never is. (Comp. " Lectures," &c., Vol. II. pp. 333, 334.) Paul recites with precision the narrative which he 288 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [IV. 28-31. proposes to allegorize. "Abraham had two sons. He who was of the bondwoman was born after the flesh " ; — there was nothing supernatural in the circumstances of Ishmael's birth. (Gen. xvi. 15.) " But he of the freewoman was by promise " ; — Isaac was miraculously born, agreeably to a promise of Jehovah, after his mother had passed the age of child-bearing. (Gen. xviii. 10.) Taken as materials for an allegory, the mothers represent " the two covenants " ; Hagar, the Jewish ; Sarah, the Christian. Hagar, a slave, represents " the one from [the covenant given from] the Mount Sinai, which gendereth to bondage " ; " for this Hagar is Mount Sinai in Arabia " [Mount Sinai goes in Arabia by the very name of Hagar (see Koppe, " Test. Nov.," Vol. V. pp. 136, 137)] ; and [in my allegory] she corresponds " to Jerusalem which now is, and is in bondage with her children [to the exist- ing Jewish institution, whose adherents render a slav- ish service]." But the superior [here I would change the punctuation, and read, *H Se avco, 'lepovaaX^ kkevOipa eo-rlv, and translate, She that is above (for this ren- dering see John viii. 23 ; Phil. iii. 14 ; Col. iii. 1, 2), the superior, that is, Sarah] is, or corresponds to, the free Jerusalem, the free Christian Church, " which is our mother," which numbers as its children us free Christians, as the free man Isaac was the son of the free woman, Sarah. And to us, in view of the growth to which the Christian Church is destined, may be applied what was said by the prophet (Is. liv. 1) to Sarah's posterity of old : " Rejoice, thou barren, that bearest not," &c. (Comp. " Lectures," &c., Vol. III. p. 259.) IV. 28-31. Now we, brethren, as Isaac was, are the children of promise. But as then he that was born after the flesh persecuted him V. 13, 14.] EPISTLE TO THE GALATIANS. 289 that was born after the Spirit, even so it is now. Neverthe- less, what saith the Scripture ? " Cast out the bondwoman and her son : for the son of the bondwoman shall not be heir with the son of the free woman." So then, brethren, we are not children of the bondwoman, but of the free. Paul pursues the allegorical application of the his- tory : As Isaac was a child of promise, being born according to the promise to Abraham (Gen. xviii. 10), so we are children of promise, being born, as it were, into the Christian Church, agreeably to another prom- ise to that patriarch (Gen. xii. 3). Ishmael, "born after the flesh, persecuted [with insult] him [Isaac] that was born after the spirit." (Gen. xxi. 9.) So we, the spiritual children of Abraham, are persecuted by his carnal children. But God's purpose of giving us Christians the inheritance of his grace is similar to his purpose for Isaac, expressed in ancient Scripture, where it said, " Cast out the bondwoman and her son, for the son of the bondwoman shall not be heir with the son of the free woman." (Gen. xxi. 10.) In short, brethren, in our origin and our privileges we answer to him of old who was son of the free woman, and not to him who was son of the slave. V. 13, 14. By love serve one another ; for all the Law is fulfilled in one word, even in this : " Thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself." That is ; if you will be tenacious of the Law, show your attachment to it, not by observing circumcision (v. 1) or any other particular of its temporary ritual, but by the practice of that mutual charity which was its comprehensive rule (Lev. xix. 18), and is a rule of perpetual obligation. 25 290 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [IV. 7-10. SECTION V. EPISTLE TO THE EPHESIANS. IV. 7-10. Unto every one of us is given grace according to the measure of the gift of Christ. Wherefore he saith, "When he as- cended up on high, he led captivity captive, and gave gifts unto men." (Now that he ascended, what is it but that he also descended into the lower parts of the earth ? He that descended is the same also that ascended up far above all heavens, that he might fill all things.) The Apostle quotes here from a Psalm (lxviii. 18), where, according to the most approved translation, we read as follows, viz. : — " Thou hast ascended on high ; Thou hast led captive the vanquished ; Thou hast received gifts from men." The Psalm appears to be a triumphal ode on the occasion of the reconveyance of the ark to its place after some victory obtained by the Israelites over their neighbors on the northeastern frontier (lxviii. 15, 22). It is Jehovah who is addressed by the Psalmist in the quoted words. If the Apostle had intended to repre- sent them as having originally had any relation to the subject which he was treating, of course he would have taken care to quote them exactly, instead of changing the structure of the sentence as he has done, and making the material alteration of " gave " for " re- ceived." Nothing to the contrary of this remark can be inferred from the introductory words rendered " Wherefore he saith " ( Aio \eyei). They may be briefly rendered, " As to which the Scripture saith " ; meaning simply, The Scripture uses language which I may IV. 7-10.] EPISTLE TO THE EPHESIANS. 291 apply to this matter. (Comp. Eph. v. 14 ; James iv. 6 ; texts which are decisive as to this interpretation.) Paul had been reminding his Ephesian converts of the great exaltation they had attained in being " made to sit in heavenly places in Christ Jesus." (Eph. ii. 6, i. 3.) He subjoins the exhortation to do credit, by an humble walk, to the dignity of their calling : " I therefore, the prisoner of the Lord, beseech you that ye walk worthy of the vocation wherewith ye are called, with all lowliness and meekness, with long- suffering, forbearing one another in love" (iv. 1, 2). It is to this topic, I think, that he means his quotation to apply. According to my view, his train of thought might be thus expressed : Be humble, that you may be exalted. Descend, that you may ascend. (Comp. Luke xiv. 10.) Do what God himself is represented to have done in that choral burst of triumph, in which he is said to have led captive his enemies, and to have " as- cended up far above all heavens, that he might fill all things." Observe that he is said to have " ascended." One can only ascend from a lower level ; and the word implies that God, not jealously adhering to the abode of his majesty, " descended first into the lower parts of the earth " (that is, " these lower regions," viz. the earthly, the terrestrial regions • not any " parts " which are " lower " in relation to the earth's surface, but the earth's surface itself, which is " lower " in re- lation to " heaven "). If God could first descend so that he might ascend to his greatness, so may you. — " Gave gifts unto men," instead of " received gifts from men," the Apostle perhaps wrote by an error of mem- ory. Perhaps he may have had authority for it, as the reading now appears in the Chaldee and Syriac versions. At all events, having done so, he makes a further application of the words accordingly. As, 292 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [Y. 14. according to these quoted words, God anciently " gave gifts unto men," so, he says, God is giving them now ; to some he gives gifts to be Apostles ; to some, to be prophets, &c. (iv. 11). V. 14. Wherefore he saith, "Awake, thou that sleepest, and arise from the dead, and Christ shall give thee light." Rather, "it saith." But who or what saith'? It has been customary with the commentators, but with little show of probability, to understand the Apostle as referring to some language of Isaiah (xxvi. 19, lx. 1). I suppose the words are simply a fragment of one of those sacred lyrics which it seems (Eph. v. 19) that the Ephesians used in their worship. They nearly fall into lines in one of the Anacreontic measures : — "Eyeipe 6 Ka$evdcov, Kal dvacrra €K tg>v veKpcov, 'EirKpavo-ei croi 6 Xpicrros. I think we hear people introduce a quotation with the words " It says," when the quotation is from some well-known composition, of some degree of authority, greater or less ; — it may be, the Bible ; it may be, the catechism or the hymn-book. It seems sufficiently clear, from this instance, that it is not safe to maintain that the use of the form always implies a reference to some book of Scripture. V. 31, 32. For this cause shall a man leave his father and mother, and shall be joined unto his wife, and they two shall be one flesh. This is a great mystery : but I speak concerning Christ and the Church. No intelligent reader can doubt that these words, in their original use (Gen. ii. 24), were applied to the VI. 2, 3.] EPISTLE TO THE EPHESIANS. 293 conjugal relation, and to that alone. Paul says that he turns them into a significant emblem or symbol (fjLvarripLov, comp. Apoc. i. 20, xvii, 5, 7), by making an application of them to the union subsisting between Christ and his Church. (Comp. " Lectures," &c., Vol. II. p. 334.) VI. 2, 3. Honor thy father and mother (which is the first commandment with promise, that it may be well with thee, and thou mayest live long on the earth). By the first clause inclosed in the parenthesis, I understand the Apostle to be calling attention to the fact, that this command is sanctioned by an encour- aging promise (comp. Exod. xx. 12), while those which precede it all bear the form of prohibition. And his words which follow, " that it may be well with thee," &c. (Eph. vi. 3), are merely a recital of that promise, and by no means his own declaration that long life is to be expected as the reward of filial obedience. (Comp. "Lectures," &c., Vol. I. p. 173, note; Ps. xxxvii. 27, 29.) Paul simply describes the command- ment to which he refers as being " the first command- ment which, in the Decalogue, was accompanied by a promise ; viz. the promise, ' That it may be well with thee/ " &c. 25* 294 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [II. 16, 17. SECTION VI. EPISTLE TO THE COLOSSIANS. II. 16, 17. Let no man therefore judge you in meat, or in drink, or in respect of an holy day, or of the new moon, or of the Sab- bath days ; which are a shadow of things to come ; but the body is of Christ. The ritual Law, in comparison with that of Christ's religion, is as unsubstantial and ineffective as a shadow compared with a substance. Or, possibly, the idea is that the ritual of Moses prepared for the spiritual discipline of Christ's religion, as the shadow, thrown forward, is the precursor and herald of the substance. It is in vain to pretend to find here any such doctrine as that the old dispensation was typical of the new, in the technical sense held by divines. SECTION VII. SECOND EPISTLE TO THE THESSALONIANS. II. 3, 4. Let no man deceive you by any means : for that day shall not come, except there come a falling away first, and that man of sin be revealed, the son of perdition ; who opposeth and exalteth himself above all that is called God, or that is wor- shipped ; so that he sitteth in the temple of God, showing himself that he is God. It does not belong to my plan to inquire whom St. Paul means here by the " man of sin." In describing V. 17, 18.] FIRST EPISTLE TO TIMOTHY. 295 his impious pretensions, Paul appears to have had in mind, in one clause, language used in the Book of Daniel of the Syrian scourge of God's people, Anti- ochus Epiphanes. Of that prince it had been said, " He shall exalt himself and magnify himself above every God." (Dan. xi. 36 ; comp. " Lectures," &c, Vol. IV. pp. 404, 451.) It is probable that Paul ac- commodates these words where he says that the man of sin " opposeth and exalteth himself above all that is called God," though the resemblance of phrase may be merely accidental. SECTION VIII. FIRST EPISTLE TO TIMOTHY. II. 12-14. I suffer not a woman to teach, nor to usurp authority over the man, but to be in silence. For Adam was first formed, then Eve. And Adam was not deceived, but the woman, being deceived, was in the transgression. This was a very sufficient and appropriate argument for Jewish women. (Comp. Gen. ii. 18, 22, iii. 6.) Zealous, like their teachers, for the Law, it was suita- ble to silence them by an appeal drawn from the letter of the Law. The Epistle had especial regard to Ju- daizing teachers and persons under their influence. (1 Tim. i. 5 - 11 ; comp. 2 Tim. iii. 6.) To turn their own weapons against them was a way of reasoning always recognized as legitimate. V. 17, 18. Let the elders that rule well be counted worthy of double honor, 296 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 9. especially they who labor in the word and doctrine. For the Scripture saith, " Thou shalt not muzzle the ox that treadeth out the corn," and, " The laborer is worthy of his reward." In the former of these instances (Deut. xxv. 4), old Scripture directs one application of a general principle of justice, of which the Apostle commands another. The general statement of that principle, which, in the last clause, Paul appears also to refer to Scripture, is nowhere found therein in the words specified, though it is in sense. (Lev. xix. 13 ; Deut. xxiv. 14, 15.) SECTION IX. SECOND EPISTLE TO TIMOTHY. I. 9. Who hath saved us, and called us with an holy calling, not ac- cording to our works, but according to his own purpose and grace, which was given us in Christ Jesus before the world began. God "hath saved us and called us with an holy calling " ; that is, he hath made us his covenant people, and invited us to the privileges of a revealed religion. (See above, pp. 225 - 228.) And this he hath done, " not according to our works " (see above, pp. 228 - 242), but according to a purpose which (to be fulfilled, in good time, by the agency of Jesus) he entertained "before the world began" (irpo xpovcov alcovlcov), that is, which he entertained so early as before the time of the introduction of Judaism (see above, p. 78), and even announced before that time to the patriarchs. (Gen. xii. 3, xxvi. 4, xxviii. 14.) III. 15, 16.] SECOND EPISTLE TO TIMOTHY. 297 II. 8. Jesus Christ, of the seed of David. See above, p. 14; also, Eom. i. 3 and Gal. iv. 4. II. 19. The foundation of God standeth sure, having this seal, " The Lord knoweth them that are his." " The Lord will show who are his," Moses had said, at the time of the rebellion of Korah. (Numb. xvi. 5.) Paul appears to apply the words to God's recognition of his children in Christ. III. 8. As Jannes and Jambres withstood Moses, so do these also resist the truth. Jannes and Jambres were the names given by the Targumists and Talmudists to two sons of Balaam, and to two Egyptian magicians, who, among other misdeeds, opposed the application of Moses (Exod. vii. 11 eiseq.) to Pharaoh. (See Wetsten. "Nov. Test.," Tom. II. p. 362.) Paul's reference, in this instance, confirms what I have repeatedly said, in the course of these comments, of the legitimacy of drawing illustra- tions from fabulous characters and events. (See above, pp. 80, 113, &c.) III. 15, 16. From a child thou hast known the holy Scriptures, which are able to make thee wise unto salvation through faith which is in Christ Jesus. All Scripture is given by inspiration of God, and is profitable for doctrine, for reproof, for correction, for instruction in righteousness. It will not fail to be observed that in the common version the word is, which constitutes the copula of the propositions in the latter verse, is in Italic letters, indi- 298 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [III. 15, 16. eating that there is no word corresponding to it in the Greek original. Every proposition consists of a sub- ject, a predicate, and a copula expressed or understood to connect the two. In the Greek of this passage the copula is understood. The question is, where it is to be understood, and where, accordingly, in a translation, it is to be inserted. With fidelity to the original at least equal to that of our English translation, the Syriac and Vulgate, the earliest versions, as well as Clement, Origen, Tertullian, and others of the earliest Fathers, insert the copula further on, so as to represent the following collocation : All Scripture [or, every writing] given by inspiration of God is also profitable, &c. ; — thus merely affirming that whatever writings are so given are useful for teaching, &c., and not touching the question what particular writings are so given. But another question, not less important, relates to the force of the single word (BeoirvevcrTos) rendered by our translators, " given by inspiration of God." It is compounded of the two very common words signify- ing God, and breath or spirit. Oeov irvev[xa is God's spirit, or a divine, religious spirit ; and OeoirvevaTo*;, by etymological analogy, is an epithet signifying prompted, dictated, animated, by a religious spirit. The sentence accordingly will read, Every writing dictated by a religious spirit is useful for teaching, &c. Timothy, li from a child," had been acquainted with that collection of Old Testament writings known by the name of " Holy Scriptures." With some composi- tions of inferior value, it contained others to which the word Oeoirveva-ro^ deserved to be applied; among them the inspired communications of the great law- giver himself, to which that word was applicable in its highest sense. By the light they shed on the plan in. 15, 16.] SECOND EPISTLE TO TIMOTHY. 299 which the Divine wisdom had been pursuing from the earliest separation of the Jewish race, and had now consummated in the revelation of the Gospel, they were able to make the reader " wise unto salvation through faith in Christ Jesus." In further illustration of this interesting passage, I copy at length a note appended by Mr. Norton to his publication (in 1820) of " Locke's Essay for the Understanding of St. Paul's Epistles ; and Le Clerc on Inspiration " : — " Before any thing can be inferred from this passage, it is necessary to determine the true meaning of the word 0eo7n/ei/0-To?, rendered given by inspiration of God. If this term does not necessarily imply any thing mi- raculous, then the text affords no evidence in favor of the opinion which it is quoted to support. " The word occurs nowhere else in the Scriptures ; and I have seen but one example produced of its use by any profane author.* As, however, we know the words of which it is compounded, and as analogous expressions are very common, there seems little diffi- culty in determining its meaning. " The force of the expression, then, I believe, is pre- cisely the same as if the writings spoken of had been said to be composed h> irvevixan ©eov, by the spirit of God. Now every one acquainted with the phraseolo- gy of the Scriptures knows that many things are as- cribed to the spirit, or the holy spirit, or the spirit of God, when no miraculous operation is supposed by the writer. The spirit of God is a term used in the Scriptures to denote (among other meanings) all in- fluences upon, and communications to, the human mind, * Phocylides, in the following line : — Tr}$ be OeoTrvevaTov vcxpirjs \6yos iariv apicrros. 300 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [III. 15, 16. which the writer refers to God as their author ; whether they are considered as proceeding from him directly or remotely ; whether as miraculous, or as regulated by the ordinary laws of the physical and moral world ; whether they are to be referred immediately to an act of his power, or are the immediate consequence and result of means and motives, and the operation of other agents. The term is as often used to denote influences and communications not regarded as mirac- ulous, as to denote those which are thus regarded. All the means and motives which God employs to bring men to goodness, are referred to the Spirit of God ; and he who is affected by these means, and acts under the influence of these motives, is said to be actuated by the Holy Spirit, or the Spirit of God. Abundant evidence of what has just been stated may be found by consulting the lexicons and concordances of the Old and New Testaments, and especially Schleusner's article on the word irvev^ia, a translation of which, by Mr. Buckminster, is contained in the first volume of the General Repository. " Having settled the sense of the term Spirit of God, we may determine that of the word Oeoirvevaro^. This is to be understood in a similar latitude of signi- fication. It is equivalent, as has been said, to the words, ivritten by the Spirit of God ; and these words denote nothing more than written under those influences which proceed from God, whether miraculous or not. The writings thus characterized may have been the works of prophets, who received direct miraculous communications from God; or they may have been nothing more than the works of men, whose minds were acted upon by the motives which he presents, and who had that sense of religion and duty, which his dispensations to the Jewish nation were adapted III. 15, 16.] SECOND EPISTLE TO TIMOTHY. 301 to produce. In the present case, the term is, I con- ceive, applied to writings of both these classes. " In the text in question, the rendering of the words irao-a ypa^rj by the words all Scripture, is in- correct. They should be translated every writing. Allowing the common reading and construction to be correct, the following rendering will, it is believed, express the true sense of the text, as nearly as it can be expressed in our language : — " Every writing (that is, of the Old Testament, the lepa ypafifiara, the Holy Scriptures, mentioned in the preceding verse) was composed under those influences which are from God, and is profitable, &c. " If this mode of reading and constructing the verse is correct, it may be regarded as a general proposition, not to be understood strictly and universally ; since it is at least doubtful whether the Apostle would have ascribed the Song of Solomon in any sense to divine influence. " But the text may be otherwise understood and thus rendered : — " Every writing, composed under those influences which are from God, is profitable, &c. " The account which has been given of the terms Spirit, Holy Spirit, and Spirit of God, will serve to explain other passages, which are usually quoted in defence of the doctrine of the inspiration of the whole of the Old and New Testaments." 26 302 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [I. 1-3. SECTION X. EPISTLE TO TITUS. I. 1-3. The faith of God's elect, and the acknowledging of the truth which is after godliness (in hope of eternal life), which God, that cannot lie, promised before the world began ; but hath in due times manifested his word through preaching, which is committed unto me. I have inclosed in a parenthesis the words " in hope of eternal life," which I understand to be equivalent to " resting on a hope of eternal life," and to be added as a description of " the truth which is after godliness," that is, which is productive of godliness. According to this simple arrangement, it is not " eternal life," or " the hope of eternal life," which is declared by the Apostle to have been " promised " by God " before the world began " (77-/00 xpovcov alcovlcov) ; that is, before the times of the Jewish dispensation. (Comp. above, p. 78.) We have no knowledge that eternal life, or the hope of it, was promised thus early ; but the contrary. What the Apostle truly declares to have been promised thus early (Gen. xii. 3, xviii. 18, xxii. 18, xxvi. 4, xxviii. 14; Deut. xviii. 15) was, that "truth" after godliness, which, Paul adds, was " in due times mani- fested " through Jesus, and made known to the world " through preaching," in which Paul was employed. II. 14. A peculiar people. The disciples of Jesus, says Paul, sustain a special relation to God, as did the disciples of Moses of old. (See Exod. xix. 5 ; Deut. vii. 6, xiv. 2, xxvi. 18 ; and comp. above, pp. 225 - 228.) I. 9-12.] FIRST EPISTLE OF PETER. 303 SECTION XI. FIRST EPISTLE OF PETER. I. 9-12. Receiving the end of your faith, even the salvation of your souls. Of which salvation the prophets have inquired and searched diligently, who prophesied of the grace that should come unto you ; searching what, or what manner of time the Spirit of Christ which was in them did signify, when it testified beforehand the sufferings of Christ, and the glory that should follow. Unto whom it was revealed, that not unto themselves, but unto you, they did minister the things which are now reported unto you by them that have preached the Gospel unto you with the Holy Ghost sent down from heaven ; which things the angels desire to look into. From these words, Peter appears to me to have un- derstood the case of the ancient writers called Proph- ets, just as I have represented it. They were not inspired, or supernaturally instructed men. On the contrary, they had very imperfect apprehensions — apprehensions unsatisfactory to themselves — of that " grace that should come," to which they referred in vague language, founded on the promises made to Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob (Gen. xii. 3, xxvi. 4, xxviii. 14), and on the promise made by Moses (Deut. xviii. 15). They testified, indeed, through " the spirit of Christ which was in them " ; that is, a spirit, an im- pulse, which led them to speak of Christ. But as to what it " did signify," — what in particular was im- ported by the general language which Moses, their great authority on the subject, had used in relation to the coming teacher, — respecting this they were at a loss ; respecting this " they inquired and searched diligently " ; and, as appears from what they have written upon it, 304 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [1.9-12. they inquired and searched with only partial success, arriving at conclusions very materially erroneous. The general terms in which Moses had foretold the com- ing " prophet like unto himself," had reference to, and ultimately had their fulfilment in, " the sufferings of Christ, and the glory that should follow." The proph- ets of the later ages had meant their representation of the expected Christ to be a repetition and amplifica- tion of the idea presented by Moses, and therefore they might properly be said to " testify beforehand the sufferings [or experiences] of Christ, and the glory that should follow," because these were the true im- port of the promise of Moses, and it was the promise of Moses which (distorted and incorrect as was in fact the image they gave of it) the prophets had de- signed to repeat. (Comp. Luke x. 24.) And much, in relation to the subject and to the " manner of time " of its occurrence, as they were ignorant of, this they knew, — " it was revealed " — it was obvious to them — that the hope of the Messiah's coming was not accomplished in their day, but remained to be accom- plished subsequently, and accordingly was accom- plished, as Peter says, in the time of those to whom he was writing. "Unto whom it was revealed that not unto themselves, but unto you [unto a future time, — unto your time, as it turns out] they did minister the things which are now reported unto you by them that have preached the Gospel unto you with the Holy Ghost sent down from heaven ; which things the angels desire to look into [things, so far from being subject to be comprehended by the old Jewish sages, with their imperfect hints derived from Moses, that still, even after the great fact of the Messiah's mission has taken place, they are matter for the scrutiny of higher intel- ligences]." I. 18, 19.] EIRST EPISTLE OF PETER. 305 I have founded part of the above remarks on the common translation, " the sufferings of Christ and the glory that should follow " (i. 11). But I doubt whether the Greek will any way bear this rendering. The literal sense of the words (ra eh Xpco-rbv iraO-r^ara) is, the sufferings to Christ ; that is, the sufferings down to Christ's time. Whose sufferings 1 Who did " the prophets " expect would " suffer " till the time of Christ's appearance, and then have suffering succeeded by " glory " % They expected precisely this respecting the nation to which they belonged. I propose, there- fore, instead of " the sufferings of Christ and the glory which should follow " (which is not a correct repre- sentation of Peter's words), to read, " the [national] sufferings till the Messiah's time, and the glory fated then to be disclosed," I. 15, 16. As he which hath called you is holy, so be ye holy in all man- ner of conversation ; because it is written, " Be ye holy, for I am holy." Here Peter simply casts his own exhortation into the form of a command recorded to have been anciently given by God (Lev. xi. 44), and fortifies his precept by a repetition of that command. I. 18, 19. Ye were not redeemed with corruptible things, as silver and gold, from your vain conversation received by tradition from your fathers ; but with the precious blood of Christ, as of a lamb without blemish and without spot. They had been " redeemed " from a " vain conversa- tion " ; that is, they had been rescued from an irrelig- ious life. They had been rescued by the " blood of Christ," because Christ's death had been the needful 26* 306 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [1.23-25,11.4-10. attestation to that Gospel of his which was the instru- ment of their moral renovation. (Comp. John i. 29 ; 1 Cor. vi. 19, 20 ; Tit. ii. 14.) His blood was « pre- cious," because it was the blood of one innocent as a lamb ; resembling, in his freedom from moral defect, the physical perfection of those victims, which the ritual required to be " without blemish." I. 23-25, II. 4-10. Being born again, not of corruptible seed, but of incorrupti- ble, by the word of God, which liveth and abideth. For all flesh is as grass, and all the glory thereof as the flower of grass. The grass withereth, and the flower thereof falleth away ; but the word of the Lord endureth for ever. And this is the word which by the Gospel is preached unto you. To whom coming, as unto a living stone, disallowed indeed of men, but chosen of God, and precious, ye also, as lively stones, are built up a spiritual house, an holy priesthood, to offer up spiritual sacrifices, acceptable to God by Jesus Christ. Because it is contained in the Scripture, " Behold, I lay in Zion a chief corner-stone, elect, precious ; and he that be- lieveth on him shall not be confounded." Unto you, there- fore, which believe, he is precious ; but unto them which be disobedient, the stone which the builders disallowed, the same is made the head of the corner, and a stone of stumbling, and a rock of offence, even to them which stumble, being disobe- dient to the word : whereunto also they were appointed. But ye are a chosen generation, a royal priesthood, an holy na- tion, a peculiar people ; that ye should show forth the praises of him who hath called you out of darkness into his marvel- lous light ; which in time past were not a people, but are now the people of God ; which had not obtained mercy, but now have obtained mercy. In these two passages, it is quite clear, that, to ex- press his own sentiments with the greater liveliness and effect, the Apostle does but cull sentences and ex- pressions from different parts of old Scripture, and transfer them from their original meaning, with free III. 10-12,14,15.] FIRST EPISTLE OF PETER. 307 alterations to suit the purpose to which he applies them. (Comp. Is. xl. 6, xxviii. 16 ; Ps. cxviii. 22; Is. viii. 14; Jer. vi. 21 ; Exod. xix. 6; Deut. vii. 6, xiv. 2; Hos. ii. 23 ; also above, pp. 225 - 228.) II. 22, 24. Who did no sin, neither was guile found in his mouth ; by whose stripes ye were healed. Here is another instance of precisely the same kind as the last two. The Apostle, in speaking of his Master, adopts language which had been employed in the Old Testament with a different application. (Is. liii. 9, 5 ; comp. " Lectures," &c., Vol. III. pp. 252 - 259.) No one can argue that, by merely applying to Jesus language borrowed from an ancient writer, Peter meant to imply that, in using that language, that writer had described Jesus, unless he is prepared to maintain that, when the same Apostle (1 Peter ii. 9, 10) calls " the strangers scattered throughout Pontus," &c. (ibid. i. 1) "a royal priesthood," and "a people which had not obtained mercy, but now have obtained mercy," those " strangers " were the persons whom Moses and Hosea had designated when they first used those ex- pressions. The interpretation of this passage of Peter's Epistle is the more important, as it contains the only reference in the Epistles of the New Testament to what has been considered the most striking prediction of Jesus in the Old. (See above, p. 64.) III. 10-12, 14,15. He that will love life and see good days, let him refrain his tongue from evil, and his lips that they speak no guile ; let him eschew evil, and do good ; let him seek peace and ensue it. For the eyes of the Lord are over the righteous, and his 308 NOTES ON PASSAGES IN THE [HI. 18-20. ears are open unto their prayers ; but the face of the Lord is against them that do evil And be not afraid of their terror, neither be troubled ; but sanctify the Lord God in your hearts. Here again the Apostle does but clothe his senti- ments and injunctions in words of old Scripture, as a preacher of the present day would do. (Comp. Ps. xxxiv. 12-16; Is. viii. 12, 13.) III. 18-20. Christ also hath once suffered for sins, the just for the unjust, that he might bring us to God ; being put to death in the flesh, but quickened by the Spirit ; by which also he went and preached unto the spirits in prison ; which sometime were disobedient, when the long-suffering of God waited in the days of Noah, while the ark was a preparing, wherein few, that is, eight souls, were saved by water. Our English translation of these verses I take to convey an altogether erroneous idea. As they stand in the printed editions of the Greek, the sentence is very incompact, and its import, accordingly, obscure. It has probably suffered violence in transcription, — a fact which is indicated by some variety of reading in the manuscripts. Taking the text as it is printed, by " the spirits in prison (lv foXa/cy), which sometime were disobedient," I understand the disobedient spirits once imprisoned in the bondage of iniquity (comp. Isaiah xlii. 7), or (preferably) the spirits, once disobedient, now in safety. (Comp. ev\a^€, " saved," 2 Pet. ii. 5.) For " when the long-suffering of God waited," I propose, by an easy and perfectly allowable change (o, re for ore), to read " which also the long-suffering of God awaited." We shall then understand the Apostle as saying, that Christ, by that holy spirit which dwelt in him, and which was but quickened into higher life when he died, had gone forth [during his earthly ministry] and IV. 8.] FIRST EPISTLE OF PETER. 309 preached to benighted minds, once disobedient, now saved ; which also [that is, the like of which, — preach- ing efficacious to men's salvation] God's long-suffering mercy was awaiting, all the time that, in Noah's days, that ark was in preparation, wherein eventually eight persons were saved in the flood of water ; which also [that is, water, applied in baptism] doth also now save us, &c. But this explanation of a difficult passage, right or wrong, is something aside from my purpose. The only question presented by it, in connection with the argu- ment I now am treating, is, whether Peter could thus refer to Noah and his ark, unless he believed the ac- count of them in Genesis to be historically true. And upon this point I have nothing to add to what I have already said in different places, of the perfect rhetori- cal and logical legitimacy of allusions of this kind to fabulous narrations. (Comp. above, pp. 80, 113, 297.) In saying that, in the ministry of Jesus, God's long- suffering mercy waited for men to betake themselves to the ark of refuge, just as he put off the flood all the time that the ark was building, Peter presented a lively image to readers to whom the narrative of that proceeding was familiar ; but by no recognized rules of the interpretation of language can he be understood to vouch for the narrative as true. IV. 8. Above all things have fervent charity among yourselves \ for charity shall cover the multitude of sins. In the original use of the words here quoted, their meaning appears from the antithesis in the context (Prov. x. 12) to have been, that charity conceals a neighbor's faults. It is not clear, nor is it material, whether the Apostle meant to repeat them in this 310 NOTES ON PASSAGES, &o. [IV. 18, V. 5. sense, or with the different import that charity is a virtue so excellent that it will atone for, and, as it were, blot out, faults in its possessor. IV. 18, V. 5. If the righteous scarcely be saved, where shall the ungodly and the sinner appear ? God resisteth the proud, and giveth grace to the humble. Quotations from the Book of Proverbs (xi. 31, iii. 34, the former, however, not from the Hebrew, but from the Septuagint) are here naturally introduced, after the manner common with all writers. SECTION XII. FIKST EPISTLE OF JOHN. III. 11, 12. We should love one another ; not as Cain, who was of that wicked one, and slew his brother. And wherefore slew he him ? Because his own works were evil, and his brother's righteous. Am I asked, whether St. John, exhorting his disci- ples to mutual love, could refer to the story of Cain (Gen. iv. 8) unless he regarded it as true history I I ask in return, whether I am precluded from advising a young friend to adopt for himself the choice of Her- cules, unless I am ready to maintain the truth of the story in the Memorabilia ; or whether I may not enforce my exhortation to join effort to prayer, by re- ferring to the tale of Hercules and the Wagoner, without making myself responsible for the existence of Hercules and the wagoner as real persons. (See above, pp. 80, 113, 297, 309 ; also, below, p. 341.) PART III. BOOKS OF DISPUTED AUTHENTICITY. SECTION I. EPISTLE TO THE HEBREWS. The New Testament books on which I have re- marked, with others which contain no reference to the Old Testament calling for comment (viz. the Epis- tles to the Philippians and to Philemon, and the First Epistle to the Thessalonians), complete the list of those whose authenticity was unquestioned in the primitive Church (6/jLo\oyovfieva). The others found in the received collection were anciently called spun- ous or disputed (yoOa or azm\e